Selected quad for the lemma: world_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
world_n love_n love_v neighbour_n 2,121 5 9.0617 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27004 The reasons of the Christian religion the first part, of godliness, proving by natural evidence the being of God ... : the second part, of Christianity, proving by evidence supernatural and natural, the certain truth of the Christian belief ... / by Richard Baxter ... ; also an appendix defending the soul's immortality against the Somatists or Epicureans and other pseudo-philosophers. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1667 (1667) Wing B1367; ESTC R5892 599,557 672

There are 53 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

wrath_n contention_n envy_n malice_n covetousness_n injustice_n oppression_n war_n uncharitableness_n and_o all_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o self_n be_v the_o grand_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o of_o the_o public_a good_a and_o peace_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o the_o commonwealth_n it_o give_v we_o so_o many_o precept_n for_o self-denial_n as_o no_o other_o religion_n do_v ever_o mention_n and_o such_o a_o example_n against_o it_o in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o be_v the_o astonishment_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n and_o therefore_o all_o other_o religion_n do_v in_o vain_a attempt_n the_o true_a purify_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n or_o the_o pacify_v of_o the_o divide_a mind_n of_o man_n while_o they_o let_v alone_o this_o sin_n of_o selfishness_n or_o light_o touch_v it_o which_o be_v the_o root_n and_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n §_o 5._o no_o religion_n do_v so_o much_o reveal_v to_o we_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n 1._o and_o his_o work_n for_o man_n and_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o the_o christian_a religion_n do_v and_o doubtless_o that_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a doctrine_n which_o make_v know_v god_n most_o to_o man_n mind_n and_o that_o be_v the_o best_a religion_n which_o bring_v man_n near_o to_o his_o creator_n in_o love_n and_o purity_n few_o of_o the_o heathen_n know_v god_n in_o his_o unity_n and_o few_o in_o the_o trinity_n of_o his_o essential_a primality_n many_o question_v his_o particular_a providence_n and_o government_n they_o know_v not_o man_n relation_n or_o duty_n to_o he_o while_o they_o be_v distract_v with_o the_o observance_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o god_n they_o indeed_o have_v none_o though_o god_n be_v incomprehensible_a to_o we_o all_o yet_o be_v there_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o perfection_n reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o light_n of_o christianity_n which_o we_o may_v seek_v in_o vain_a with_o any_o other_o sort_n of_o man_n §_o 6._o no_o religion_n do_v so_o wonderful_o open_a and_o magnify_v and_o reconcile_v god_n justice_n and_o mercy_n to_o mankind_n as_o christianity_n do_v it_o show_v how_o his_o justice_n be_v found_v in_o his_o holiness_n and_o his_o govern_n relation_n it_o justify_v it_o by_o open_v the_o purity_n of_o his_o nature_n the_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o the_o use_n of_o punishment_n to_o the_o right_a government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o magnify_v it_o by_o open_v the_o dreadfulness_n and_o certainty_n of_o his_o penalty_n and_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o redeemer_n when_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o justice_n sin_n and_o misery_n it_o reveal_v the_o wonderful_a greatness_n of_o god_n mercy_n it_o open_v those_o operation_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o which_o heathenism_n and_o mahometanism_n be_v utter_a stranger_n to_o they_o speak_v diminutive_o both_o of_o mercy_n and_o justice_n and_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o make_v god_n merciful_a without_o make_v he_o unjust_a nor_o to_o make_v he_o just_a without_o obscure_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o mercy_n which_o be_v peculiar_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o promise_v of_o everlasting_a blessedness_n §_o 7._o the_o christian_a religion_n open_v many_o other_o part_n of_o holy_a doctrine_n which_o be_v unknown_a to_o man_n that_o learn_v they_o not_o from_o thence_o such_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o fall_v and_o of_o original_a sin_n and_o of_o justification_n sanctification_n adoption_n and_o the_o right_n worship_v of_o god_n of_o which_o mention_n be_v make_v before_o more_o distinct_o §_o 8._o no_o religion_n can_v be_v more_o charitable_a 10._o for_o it_o whole_o consist_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o one_o another_o and_o in_o the_o mean_n to_o kindle_v and_o maintain_v this_o love_n the_o whole_a law_n of_o christ_n be_v fulfil_v in_o love_n even_o in_o love_a god_n for_o himself_o above_o all_o and_o our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o god_n yea_o our_o enemy_n so_o far_o as_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n amiable_a in_o they_o the_o end_n of_o all_o the_o commandment_n be_v love_n out_o of_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o unfeigned_a faith_n and_o all_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o love_v each_o other_o with_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o fervent_o yea_o to_o show_v that_o love_n which_o they_o profess_v to_o christ_n himself_o by_o the_o love_a of_o one_o another_o how_o frequent_o and_o earnest_o be_v this_o great_a duty_n press_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n how_o great_a a_o stress_n do_v he_o lay_v upon_o it_o he_o make_v it_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o love_n to_o god_n he_o promise_v salvation_n to_o it_o he_o forbid_v selfishness_n that_o it_o may_v not_o hinder_v it_o he_o command_v we_o to_o live_v in_o the_o constant_a expression_n of_o it_o and_o to_o provoke_v one_o another_o to_o love_n and_o to_o good_a work_n he_o have_v make_v himself_o the_o most_o matchless_a and_o wonderful_a example_n of_o it_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o according_a to_o man_n charity_n he_o will_v judge_v they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n how_o dry_a and_o barren_a be_v all_o religion_n and_o write_n that_o we_o have_v ever_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o point_n of_o love_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o love_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n §_o 9_o i_o find_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v most_o for_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o any_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n most_o vehement_o command_v they_o and_o appoint_v the_o fit_a mean_n for_o the_o attain_n of_o they_o 1._o all_o christian_n be_v command_v to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n to_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o discord_n and_o division_n and_o contention_n be_v earnest_o forbid_v they_o psalm_n and_o condemn_v and_o all_o occasion_n which_o may_v lead_v they_o thereunto_o 2._o and_o they_o have_v one_o head_n and_o centre_n one_o god_n and_o saviour_n who_o be_v their_o common_a governor_n end_v and_o interest_n in_o who_o therefore_o they_o may_v all_o unite_v when_o most_o other_o in_o the_o world_n do_v show_v a_o man_n no_o further_o end_n than_o self-preservation_n and_o so_o while_o self_n be_v each_o man_n end_n and_o interest_n there_o be_v as_o many_o end_n as_o man_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o such_o shall_v have_v any_o true_a unity_n and_o concord_n but_o to_o every_o true_a christian_a the_o please_a and_o glorify_v of_o god_n and_o the_o promote_a of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v above_o all_o self-interest_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o in_o this_o they_o be_v all_o unite_a and_o though_o they_o all_o seek_v their_o own_o felicity_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v only_o in_o the_o seek_n of_o this_o high_a end_n which_o be_v finis_fw-la amantis_fw-la sed_fw-la creaturae_fw-la amantis_fw-la creatorem_fw-la the_o end_n of_o a_o lover_n which_o desire_v unity_n and_o respect_v both_o the_o lover_n and_o the_o belove_a but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o end_n of_o the_o love_n of_o equal_n but_o of_o the_o creature_n to_o the_o creator_n who_o therefore_o prefer_v his_o belove_a before_o himself_o in_o his_o intention_n so_o that_o it_o be_v only_o this_o holy_a centre_n in_o god_n that_o can_v ever_o make_v man_n all_o of_o a_o mind_n and_o agree_v the_o disagree_a world_n while_o self_n be_v every_o man_n end_n they_o will_v have_v such_o constant_a contrariety_n of_o interest_n that_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o agree_v but_o covetousness_n ambition_n and_o sensuality_n will_v keep_v they_o in_o faction_n contention_n and_o war_n continual_o moreover_o it_o be_v christianity_n that_o most_o urge_v and_o effectual_o give_v a_o hearty_a love_n to_o one_o another_o and_o teach_v they_o to_o love_v their_o neighbour_n as_o themselves_o and_o to_o do_v as_o they_o will_v have_v other_o to_o do_v by_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a root_n and_o spring_n of_o concord_n and_o it_o be_v christianity_n which_o most_o teach_v the_o forgive_n of_o wrong_n and_o love_v of_o enemy_n and_o forbear_v that_o revenge_n which_o heathen_n be_v wont_a to_o account_v a_o honour_n and_o it_o be_v christianity_n which_o teach_v man_n to_o contemn_v all_o the_o riches_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o bone_n that_o worldly_a dog_n do_v fight_v for_o and_o the_o great_a occasion_n of_o their_o strife_n and_o it_o teach_v they_o to_o mortify_v all_o those_o vice_n which_o feed_v man_n division_n and_o contention_n so_o that_o if_o any_o man_n live_v as_o a_o christian_a he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o man_n of_o unity_n
of_o my_o life_n in_o converse_n with_o such_o true_o sanctify_a person_n and_o in_o preach_v this_o gospel_n through_o the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n with_o such_o success_n upon_o no_o small_a number_n so_o that_o i_o be_o certain_a by_o full_a experience_n of_o the_o reality_n of_o that_o holy_a change_n which_o can_v be_v do_v but_o with_o the_o co-operation_n of_o god_n i_o have_v see_v that_o this_o change_n be_v another_o matter_n than_o fancy_n opinion_n or_o factious_a conjunction_n with_o a_o sect_n even_o the_o set_n up_o god_n in_o the_o soul_n as_o god_n as_o our_o owner_n ruler_n and_o chief_a good_a and_o the_o devote_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o he_o in_o resignation_n obedience_n and_o thankful_a love_n the_o seek_v of_o a_o everlasting_a felicity_n in_o his_o glorious_a sight_n and_o love_n in_o heaven_n the_o contempt_n of_o this_o world_n as_o it_o please_v the_o flesh_n and_o the_o holy_a use_n of_o it_o as_o the_o way_n to_o our_o felicity_n and_o please_a god_n the_o subdue_a and_o deny_v all_o carnal_a desire_n which_o will_v rebel_v against_o god_n and_o reason_n and_o restore_a reason_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o low_a faculty_n the_o deny_v of_o that_o inordinate_a selfishness_n which_o set_v up_o our_o interest_n against_o our_o neighbour_n and_o the_o respect_n and_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o and_o do_v to_o other_o as_o we_o will_v be_v do_v by_o and_o do_v good_a to_o all_o man_n as_o far_o as_o we_o have_v power_n the_o holy_a govern_n of_o our_o inferior_n and_o obey_v our_o superior_n in_o order_n to_o these_o end_n live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o patient_a bear_n of_o all_o affliction_n and_o diligent_a serve_a god_n in_o our_o several_a place_n to_o redeem_v our_o time_n and_o prepare_v for_o death_n and_o wait_v with_o longing_n for_o the_o everlasting_a glory_n the_o hope_n of_o which_o be_v cause_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n our_o ransom_n reconciler_n example_n teacher_n governor_n and_o judge_n this_o be_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o religion_n express_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o impress_v on_o the_o soul_n of_o sanctify_a man_n by_o this_o effect_n i_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o no_o deceiver_n as_o i_o know_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o true_a physician_n and_o no_o deceiver_n when_o i_o see_v he_o ordinary_o and_o thorough_o perform_v the_o cure_n which_o he_o undertake_v he_o save_v we_o actual_o from_o the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o bring_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v he_o be_v our_o saviour_n this_o witness_n through_o his_o mercy_n i_o have_v in_o myself_o and_o be_v always_o with_o i_o and_o in_o those_o who_o i_o converse_v with_o round_a about_o i_o i_o have_v also_o upon_o just_a enquiry_n find_v that_o the_o witness_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n and_o miracle_n have_v deliver_v we_o their_o testimony_n with_o a_o threefold_a evidence_n 1._o the_o evidence_n of_o just_a credibility_n to_o a_o humane_a belief_n 2._o the_o evidence_n of_o natural_a certainty_n in_o the_o natural_a impossibility_n of_o deceit_n 3._o the_o evidence_n of_o supernatural_a divine_a attestation_n in_o 1._o the_o image_n of_o god_n on_o their_o heart_n and_o doctrine_n 2._o their_o miracle_n and_o 3._o their_o sanctify_a success_n and_o i_o have_v find_v that_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v also_o give_v we_o the_o same_o three_o degree_n of_o proof_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o their_o testimony_n though_o miracle_n continue_v not_o now_o as_o then_o and_o i_o have_v look_v round_o about_o i_o in_o the_o world_n as_o diligent_o and_o impartial_o as_o i_o can_v to_o see_v whether_o christ_n and_o the_o way_n which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v we_o have_v any_o competitor_n which_o may_v make_v it_o difficult_a to_o resolve_v which_o to_o prefer_v and_o follow_v and_o as_o i_o have_v find_v that_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o have_v absolute_a dominion_n and_o sovereignty_n over_o we_o and_o be_v our_o chief_a benefactor_n nor_o fit_a to_o be_v our_o felicity_n and_o ultimate_a end_n so_o i_o have_v find_v that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o so_o fit_a to_o be_v take_v for_o our_o mediator_n and_o the_o way_n to_o god_n as_o jesus_n christ_n none_o else_o that_o have_v a_o natural_a aptitude_n none_o else_o among_o man_n that_o be_v perfect_a without_o sin_n that_o have_v conquer_v satan_n the_o world_n and_o death_n that_o be_v a_o messenger_n from_o heaven_n so_o infallible_a and_o sure_a who_o doctrine_n and_o life_n be_v suit_v to_o our_o case_n none_o else_o that_o be_v become_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o have_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v into_o glory_n and_o do_v govern_v and_o preserve_v we_o and_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n and_o have_v power_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o for_o gift_n and_o grace_n nor_o that_o actual_o give_v it_o to_o the_o sanctify_a of_o all_o his_o sincere_a follower_n none_o else_o that_o have_v such_o a_o church_n and_o kingdom_n contemn_v the_o world_n and_o contemn_v by_o the_o world_n and_o so_o true_o fit_v to_o the_o please_a of_o god_n and_o the_o future_a fruition_n of_o he_o in_o glory_n i_o see_v that_o judaisme_n be_v but_o the_o porch_n of_o christianity_n and_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o confirm_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o i_o i_o shall_v have_v find_v the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v it_o much_o great_a and_o as_o for_o mahometanism_n beside_o the_o common_a truth_n which_o it_o retain_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o verity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v nothing_o else_o which_o at_o all_o invit_v my_o understanding_n and_o as_o for_o heathenism_n the_o case_n that_o it_o have_v bring_v the_o miserable_a world_n into_o be_v much_o to_o be_v pity_v and_o deplore_v dei._n much_o precious_a truth_n be_v reveal_v to_o we_o by_o nature_n but_o experience_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o need_n of_o more_o and_o christianity_n have_v all_o which_o nature_n teach_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o so_o that_o christianity_n have_v no_o considerable_a competitor_n and_o as_o for_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o honour_n superiority_n and_o command_n of_o other_o the_o favour_n applause_n and_o praise_n of_o great_a one_o or_o of_o the_o multitude_n voluptuousness_n and_o fleshly_a delight_n etc._n etc._n ease_n long_a life_n or_o any_o accommodation_n of_o the_o flesh_n yea_o learning_n itself_o as_o it_o be_v but_o the_o please_a of_o the_o fancy_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o unnecessary_a thing_n all_o these_o i_o have_v peruse_v and_o find_v they_o to_o be_v deceit_n and_o trouble_n a_o glimpse_n of_o heaven_n a_o taste_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n yea_o a_o fervent_a desire_n after_o god_n yea_o a_o penitent_a tear_n be_v better_a than_o they_o all_o and_o yield_v a_o delight_n which_o leave_v a_o better_a taste_n behind_o it_o and_o which_o my_o reason_n more_o approve_v in_o the_o review_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o all_o inferior_a pleasure_n appear_v to_o i_o in_o the_o common_a effect_n they_o distract_v and_o corrupt_v the_o mind_n of_o those_o that_o have_v the_o great_a measure_n of_o they_o and_o make_v they_o the_o calamity_n of_o their_o time_n the_o furious_a afflicter_n of_o the_o upright_a and_o the_o pity_n of_o all_o sober_a stander-by_n who_o see_v they_o turn_v the_o world_n into_o a_o bedlam_n and_o how_o all_o their_o honour_n wealth_n and_o sport_n will_v leave_v they_o at_o a_o die_a hour_n and_o with_o what_o deject_a mind_n unwelcome_a death_n will_v be_v entertain_v by_o they_o and_o with_o what_o sad_a review_v they_o will_v look_v back_o upon_o all_o their_o life_n and_o in_o what_o sordid_a dust_n and_o darkness_n they_o must_v leave_v the_o rot_a flesh_n when_o their_o soul_n be_v go_v to_o receive_v their_o doom_n before_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n all_o these_o be_v thing_n which_o be_v past_o all_o doubt_n with_o i_o since_o i_o have_v any_o solid_a use_n of_o reason_n and_o thing_n which_o be_v still_o before_o my_o eye_n wherefore_o my_o god_n i_o look_v to_o thou_o i_o come_v to_o thou_o to_o thou_o alone_o no_o man_n no_o worldly_a creature_n make_v i_o none_o of_o they_o do_v redeem_v i_o none_o of_o they_o do_v renew_v my_o soul_n none_o of_o they_o will_v justify_v i_o at_o thy_o bar_n nor_o forgive_v my_o sin_n nor_o save_v i_o from_o thy_o penal_a justice_n none_o of_o they_o will_v be_v a_o full_a or_o a_o perpetual_a felicity_n or_o portion_n for_o my_o soul_n i_o be_o not_o a_o stranger_n to_o their_o promise_n and_o performance_n i_o have_v trust_v they_o too_o
to_o a_o soul_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o corporeal_a spirit_n or_o if_o the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o body_n be_v as_o liable_a as_o it_o be_v by_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n while_o it_o be_v in_o it_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o memory_n yet_o all_o those_o argument_n which_o prove_v the_o life_n of_o retribution_n hereafter_o do_v full_o prove_v that_o god_n will_v provide_v it_o a_o way_n of_o exercise_n and_o prevent_v all_o those_o hindrance_n of_o memory_n which_o may_v make_v his_o judgement_n and_o retribution_n void_a again_o therefore_o i_o say_v to_o argue_v ab_fw-la ignotis_fw-la against_o clear_a evidence_n in_o matter_n that_o our_o own_o everlasting_a joy_n or_o sorrow_n be_v concern_v in_o so_o deep_o be_v a_o folly_n that_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v with_o its_o due_a aggravation_n objection_n xx._n the_o belief_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o soul_n do_v fill_v man_n with_o fear_n and_o draw_v they_o to_o superstition_n 44._o and_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o kingdom_n by_o unavoidable_a sect_n in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o such_o transcendent_a weight_n when_o otherwise_o man_n may_v live_v in_o quietness_n to_o themselves_o and_o other_o and_o in_o promote_a of_o the_o public_a good_a answ_n this_o be_v the_o mad_a objection_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o our_o day_n there_o be_v man_n find_v that_o be_v no_o wise_a than_o to_o make_v it_o i_o have_v answer_v it_o full_o in_o divers_a popular_a treatise_n as_o that_o call_v a_o saint_n or_o a_o bruit_n etc._n etc._n 1._o the_o great_a and_o best_a thing_n be_v liable_a to_o the_o worst_a abuse_n thus_o you_o may_v argue_v against_o reason_n that_o it_o do_v but_o fill_v man_n brain_n with_o knavish_a craft_n and_o enable_v they_o to_o do_v mischief_n and_o to_o trouble_v the_o world_n and_o to_o live_v themselves_o in_o care_n and_o fear_n etc._n etc._n upon_o many_o such_o reason_n cotta_n in_o cic._n de_fw-fr nat._n deor._n do_v chide_v god_n for_o make_v man_n a_o rational_a creature_n and_o say_v he_o have_v be_v happy_a without_o it_o and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o this_o wit_n and_o reason_n we_o shall_v have_v none_o of_o these_o evil_n which_o you_o have_v here_o now_o mention_v why_o then_o be_v not_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o religion_n on_o that_o account_n to_o be_v reject_v on_o the_o same_o reason_n philosophy_n and_o learning_n may_v be_v accuse_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o turk_n and_o moscovite_n what_o abundance_n of_o sect_n and_o voluminous_a contention_n and_o tire_v consume_a study_n have_v they_o cause_v witness_v all_o the_o volume_n of_o philosopher_n and_o schoolman_n on_o the_o same_o account_v you_o may_v cry_v down_o king_n and_o civil_a government_n and_o riches_n and_o all_o that_o be_v value_v in_o the_o world_n for_o what_o war_n and_o bloodshed_n have_v there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n what_o hatred_n and_o contention_n for_o honour_n and_o wealth_n if_o you_o can_v make_v all_o man_n swine_n they_o will_v not_o stir_v for_o gold_n or_o pearl_n or_o if_o they_o be_v dog_n they_o will_v not_o fight_v for_o kingdom_n and_o if_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o impious_a worldling_n they_o will_v not_o be_v zealous_a about_o religion_n unless_o to_o dis-spirit_n it_o and_o to_o reduce_v it_o to_o the_o service_n of_o their_o fleshly_a interest_n which_o be_v the_o hypocrite_n zeal_n no_o man_n will_v contend_v for_o that_o which_o he_o value_v not_o but_o 2._o consider_v that_o though_o dog_n will_v not_o fight_v for_o crown_n they_o will_v fight_v for_o bone_n and_o some_o time_n need_v man_n of_o reason_n to_o stave_v they_o off_o and_o though_o swine_n fight_v not_o for_o gold_n they_o will_v fight_v for_o draff_n and_o burst_v their_o belly_n if_o they_o be_v not_o govern_v and_o though_o unbeliever_n and_o atheist_n trouble_v not_o the_o world_n to_o promote_v religion_n they_o set_v family_n town_n and_o country_n and_o kingdom_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n for_o their_o worldly_a pelf_n and_o fleshly_a interest_n inquire_v whether_o the_o war_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o most_o for_o carnal_a interest_n even_o where_o religion_n have_v be_v pretend_v and_o harken_v in_o westminster-hall_n and_o at_o the_o assize_n whether_o most_o of_o the_o contending_n there_o be_v such_o as_o be_v cause_v by_o religion_n or_o by_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o where_o religion_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v the_o atheist_n and_o ungodly_a that_o be_v common_o the_o chief_a contender_n who_o think_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o hope_v for_o no_o life_n to_o come_v themselves_o but_o they_o can_v endure_v other_o man_n that_o do_v it_o because_o they_o seem_v wise_a and_o better_o and_o happy_a than_o they_o and_o by_o their_o holiness_n gall_v their_o conscience_n and_o condemn_v they_o 3._o the_o extremity_n of_o this_o objection_n impudence_n appear_v in_o this_o above_o all_o that_o it_o be_v most_o notorious_a that_o there_o be_v no_o effectual_a cure_n for_o all_o the_o villainy_n of_o the_o world_n but_o true_a religion_n and_o shall_v the_o cure_n be_v make_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o disease_n 1._o read_v and_o judge_v in_o nature_n and_o scripture_n whether_o the_o whole_a matter_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o perfect_o contrary_a to_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o world_n will_v it_o trouble_v kingdom_n or_o disquiet_a soul_n to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o and_o to_o honour_n and_o obey_v he_o and_o be_v thankful_a for_o his_o mercy_n and_o to_o trust_v his_o promise_n and_o to_o rejoice_v in_o hope_n of_o endless_a glory_n and_o to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o and_o to_o do_v no_o injustice_n or_o wrong_n to_o any_o to_o forbear_v wrath_n and_o malice_n lust_n adultery_n theft_n and_o lie_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n express_v in_o this_o treatise_n 2._o be_v it_o not_o for_o want_v of_o religion_n that_o all_o the_o vice_n and_o contention_n of_o the_o world_n be_v will_v not_o man_n be_v better_a subject_n and_o better_a servant_n and_o better_a neighbour_n if_o they_o have_v more_o religion_n will_v not_o they_o lie_v and_o deceive_v and_o steal_v and_o wrong_v other_o less_o do_v you_o think_v he_o that_o believe_v a_o life_n to_o come_v or_o he_o that_o believe_v it_o not_o be_v like_a to_o cut_v your_o purse_n or_o rob_v you_o by_o the_o high_a way_n or_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o you_o or_o be_v perjure_v or_o take_v that_o which_o be_v not_o his_o own_o or_o any_o such_o unrighteous_a thing_n be_v he_o like_a to_o live_v as_o a_o good_a subject_n or_o servant_n who_o look_v for_o a_o reward_n in_o heaven_n for_o it_o or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o die_v as_o a_o beast_n do_v be_v he_o like_a to_o do_v well_o and_o avoid_v evil_a who_o be_v move_v by_o the_o effectual_a hope_n and_o fear_n of_o another_o life_n or_o he_o that_o have_v no_o such_o hope_n and_o fear_n but_o think_v that_o if_o he_o can_v escape_v the_o gallow_n there_o be_v no_o further_a danger_n have_v you_o rather_o your_o servant_n that_o be_v trust_v with_o your_o estate_n do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o life_n to_o come_v or_o that_o there_o be_v none_o nay_o why_o do_v not_o your_o objection_n militate_v as_o strong_o against_o the_o thief_n believe_v that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o assize_n for_o if_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o assize_n do_v not_o trouble_v he_o he_o may_v quiet_o take_v that_o which_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o and_o do_v what_o he_o list_v but_o this_o fill_v his_o heart_n with_o fear_n and_o trouble_n 3._o compare_v those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n brasil_n and_o soldania_n etc._n etc._n which_o believe_v not_o a_o life_n to_o come_v 〈…〉_z if_o any_o such_o there_o be_v with_o those_o that_o do_v and_o see_v which_o belief_n have_v the_o better_a effect_n 4._o what_o be_v there_o of_o any_o effectual_a power_n to_o restrain_v that_o man_n from_o any_o villainy_n which_o he_o have_v power_n to_o carry_v out_o or_o policy_n to_o cover_v who_o do_v not_o believe_v a_o life_n to_o come_v 5._o and_o if_o you_o believe_v it_o not_o what_o will_v you_o do_v with_o reason_n or_o any_o of_o your_o faculty_n or_o your_o time_n how_o will_v you_o live_v in_o the_o world_n to_o any_o better_a purpose_n than_o if_o you_o have_v sleep_v out_o all_o your_o life_n what_o talk_v you_o of_o the_o public_a good_a when_o the_o deny_v of_o our_o final_a true_a felicity_n deny_v all_o that_o be_v true_o good_a both_o public_a and_o private_a but_o so_o sottish_a and_o malignant_a a_o objection_n deserve_v pity_n more_o than_o confutation_n whatever_o religious_a person_n do_v ever_o offend_v these_o man_n with_o any_o real_a crime_n i_o can_v assure_v
keep_v it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o save_v the_o individual_n from_o it_o will_v confess_v that_o man_n interest_n be_v not_o the_o measure_n of_o god_n goodness_n especial_o consider_v what_o consequent_n also_o follow_v sin_n both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o 3._o and_o as_o to_o this_o low_a part_n of_o the_o universe_n how_o many_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v drown_v in_o woeful_a ignorance_n and_o ungodliness_n how_o few_o be_v the_o wise_a and_o good_a and_o peaceable_a when_o god_n can_v have_v send_v they_o learning_n and_o teacher_n and_o mean_n of_o reformation_n and_o have_v bless_v all_o this_o mean_n to_o their_o deliverance_n so_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o this_o low_a world_n have_v not_o so_o much_o good_a as_o god_n can_v give_v they_o and_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o best_a do_v cause_n their_o dolorous_a complaint_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n be_v infinite_o good_a and_o that_o all_o his_o work_n also_o be_v good_a in_o their_o degree_n but_o withal_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n in_o himself_o be_v the_o simple_a primitive_a good_a and_o that_o create_a goodness_n principal_o consist_v in_o a_o conformity_n to_o his_o will_n which_o be_v the_o standard_n and_o measure_n of_o it_o §_o 16._o god_n as_o consider_v in_o the_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o his_o will_n be_v most_o amiable_a and_o the_o object_n of_o our_o high_a love_n §_o 17._o but_o he_o be_v not_o know_v by_o we_o in_o those_o perfection_n as_o see_v in_o themselves_o immediate_o 32._o but_o as_o demonstrate_v and_o glorify_v expressive_o in_o his_o work_n in_o which_o he_o shine_v to_o we_o in_o his_o goodness_n §_o 18._o his_o work_n therefore_o be_v make_v for_o the_o apt_a reveal_n of_o himself_o as_o amiable_a to_o the_o intelligent_a part_n of_o his_o creation_n they_o be_v the_o book_n in_o which_o he_o have_v appoint_v we_o to_o read_v and_o the_o glass_n in_o which_o he_o have_v appoint_v we_o with_o admiration_n to_o behold_v the_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o in_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o our_o chief_a benefactor_n but_o the_o vltimate_a object_n of_o our_o love_n and_o so_o the_o end_n of_o all_o our_o motion_n §_o 19_o this_o three_o relation_n of_o god_n to_o we_o as_o our_o chief_a good_a efficient_o and_o final_o be_v the_o high_a and_o most_o perfective_a to_o we_o but_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o former_a two_o but_o they_o be_v all_o marvellous_o conjunct_a and_o concur_v in_o the_o production_n of_o most_o of_o the_o subsequent_a effect_n of_o god_n providence_n as_o the_o element_n be_v conjuct_v but_o not_o confound_v in_o mix_a body_n and_o in_o themselves_o be_v easy_o to_o be_v distinguish_v where_o they_o be_v not_o divide_v and_o their_o effect_n sometime_o also_o distinct_a but_o usual_o mix_v as_o be_v the_o cause_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o case_n of_o these_o three_o great_a relation_n though_o god_n propriety_n extend_v further_a than_o his_o government_n because_o inanimate_v and_o bruit_n be_v capable_a of_o one_o and_o not_o of_o the_o other_o yet_o as_o to_o the_o rational_a creature_n they_o be_v in_o reality_n of_o the_o same_o extent_n god_n be_v as_o to_o right_a the_o owner_n and_o the_o ruler_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o also_o their_o real_a benefactor_n and_o quoad_fw-la debitum_fw-la their_o ultimate_a end_n but_o as_o to_o consent_v on_o their_o part_n none_o but_o the_o godly_a give_v up_o themselves_o to_o he_o in_o any_o one_o of_o these_o relation_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n god_n be_v first_o our_o owner_n and_o then_o our_o ruler_n and_o our_o chief_a good_a or_o end_n his_o work_n in_o the_o first_o relation_n be_v arbitrary_a disposal_n of_o we_o his_o work_n in_o the_o second_o be_v to_o govern_v we_o and_o in_o the_o three_o attraction_n and_o felicitate_v but_o he_o so_o dispose_v of_o we_o as_o never_o to_o cross_v his_o rule_n of_o government_n and_o so_o govern_v we_o as_o never_o to_o cross_v his_o absolute_a propriety_n and_o attract_v and_o felicitate_v we_o in_o consent_n with_o his_o premiant_a act_n of_o government_n and_o all_o sweet_o and_o wonderful_o conspire_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o work_n §_o 20._o all_o these_o relation_n be_v oft_o sum_v up_o in_o one_o name_n which_o principal_o import_v the_o last_o which_o be_v the_o persective_a relation_n but_o true_o include_v both_o the_o former_a and_o that_o be_v 106._o that_o god_n be_v our_o father_n as_o the_o rational_a soul_n do_v ever_o include_v the_o sensitive_a and_o vegetative_a faculty_n so_o do_v god_n fatherly_a relation_n to_o we_o include_v his_o dominion_n and_o government_n a_o father_n be_v thus_o a_o kind_n of_o image_n of_o god_n in_o this_o relation_n for_o 1._o he_o have_v a_o certain_a propriety_n in_o his_o child_n 2._o he_o be_v by_o nature_n their_o rightful_a governor_n 3._o he_o be_v their_o benefactor_n for_o they_o be_v behold_v to_o he_o for_o their_o be_v and_o well-being_n nature_n cause_v he_o to_o love_v they_o and_o bind_v they_o again_o to_o love_v he_o and_o the_o title_n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n include_v all_o these_o divine_a relation_n to_o we_o but_o special_o express_v the_o love_n and_o graciousness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o obj._n but_o i_o must_v go_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o most_o of_o the_o world_n if_o i_o take_v god_n to_o be_v infinite_o or_o perfect_o good_a for_o operari_fw-la sequitur_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o that_o be_v perfect_o good_a will_v perfect_o do_v good_a but_o do_v we_o not_o see_v and_o feel_v what_o you_o say_v before_o the_o world_n be_v but_o as_o a_o wilderness_n and_o the_o life_n of_o man_n a_o misery_n we_o come_v into_o the_o world_n in_o weakness_n and_o in_o a_o case_n in_o which_o we_o can_v help_v ourselves_o but_o be_v a_o pity_n and_o trouble_v to_o other_o we_o be_v their_o trouble_n that_o breed_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o up_o we_o be_v vex_v with_o unsatisfy_a desire_n with_o trouble_v passion_n with_o torment_a pain_n and_o languish_a weakness_n and_o enemy_n malice_n with_o poverty_n and_o care_n with_o loss_n and_o cross_n and_o shame_n and_o grief_n with_o hard_a labour_n and_o study_n with_o the_o injury_n and_o spectacle_n of_o a_o bedlam_n world_n and_o with_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o death_n at_o last_o our_o enemy_n be_v our_o trouble_n our_o friend_n be_v our_o trouble_n our_o ruler_n be_v our_o trouble_n and_o our_o inferior_n child_n and_o servant_n be_v our_o trouble_n our_o possession_n be_v our_o trouble_n and_o so_o be_v our_o want_n and_o be_v all_o this_o the_o effect_n of_o perfect_a goodness_n and_o the_o poor_a bruit_n seem_v more_o miserable_a than_o we_o they_o labour_n and_o hunger_n and_o die_v at_o last_o to_o serve_v our_o will_n we_o beat_v they_o use_v they_o and_o abuse_v they_o at_o our_o pleasure_n and_o all_o the_o inanimate_v have_v no_o sense_n of_o any_o good_a and_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v like_o a_o dungeon_n of_o ignorance_n like_o a_o hospital_n of_o madman_n for_o folly_n and_o distractedness_n like_o a_o band_n of_o robber_n for_o injury_n and_o violence_n like_a tiger_n for_o cruelty_n like_o snarl_a dog_n for_o contention_n and_o in_o a_o word_n like_o hell_n for_o wickedness_n what_o else_o set_v the_o world_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n in_o war_n and_o bloodshed_n in_o all_o generation_n what_o make_v peacemaker_n the_o most_o neglect_a man_n what_o make_v virtue_n and_o piety_n the_o mark_n of_o persecution_n and_o of_o common_a scorn_n how_o small_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v knowledge_n or_o piety_n and_o you_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o hell_n for_o most_o at_o last_o be_v all_o this_o the_o fruit_n of_o perfect_a goodness_n these_o thought_n have_v serious_o trouble_v some_o answ_n he_o that_o will_v ever_o come_v to_o knowledge_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o first_o fundamental_a truth_n and_o in_o his_o enquiry_n proceed_v to_o lesser_a superstructure_n and_o reduce_v uncertainty_n and_o difficulty_n to_o those_o point_n which_o be_v sure_a and_o plain_a and_o not_o cast_v away_o the_o plain_a certain_a truth_n because_o they_o overtake_v some_o difficulty_n beyond_o they_o the_o true_a method_n of_o enquiry_n be_v that_o we_o first_o try_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o be_v perfect_o good_a or_o not_o if_o this_o be_v once_o prove_v beyond_o all_o controversy_n than_o all_o that_o follow_v be_v certain_o reconcilable_a to_o it_o for_o truth_n and_o truth_n be_v not_o contradictory_n now_o that_o god_n be_v perfect_o good_a have_v be_v full_o prove_v before_o he_o that_o give_v to_o all_o the_o world_n both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o orb_n all_o that_o good_a whether_o natural_a
therefore_o shall_v resign_v himself_o as_o his_o own_o to_o his_o disposal_n and_o that_o he_o be_v absolute_o his_o subject_n and_o therefore_o shall_v most_o exact_o and_o diligent_o obey_v he_o and_o i_o have_v show_v particular_o wherein_n also_o that_o man_n be_v his_o total_a beneficiary_n and_o make_v to_o love_v he_o as_o his_o chief_a good_a and_o end_n and_o therefore_o shall_v total_o devote_v himself_o to_o he_o in_o gratitude_n and_o love_n 111._o and_o desire_v he_o seek_v he_o and_o delight_n in_o he_o above_o all_o the_o world_n and_o live_v in_o his_o praise_n and_o continual_a service_n all_o this_o be_v full_o prove_v to_o be_v man_n duty_n and_o now_o let_v we_o see_v on_o what_o term_n he_o stand_v in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o §_o 1._o there_o be_v in_o the_o present_a disposition_n of_o man_n a_o great_a averseness_n to_o such_o a_o life_n of_o resignation_n obedience_n and_o love_n to_o god_n as_o be_v before_o describe_v even_o when_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v his_o duty_n and_o to_o be_v the_o best_a most_o honourable_a and_o most_o felicitating_a life_n too_o sad_a experience_n confirm_v this_o the_o bad_a be_v so_o averse_a that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o it_o the_o godly_a have_v such_o a_o mixture_n of_o averseness_n as_o find_v they_o matter_n of_o continual_a conflict_n it_o be_v this_o averseness_n which_o serve_v instead_o of_o argument_n against_o it_o or_o which_o be_v a_o pondus_fw-la to_o the_o very_a judgement_n and_o make_v it_o so_o hard_a to_o believe_v any_o argument_n which_o go_v against_o so_o strong_a a_o contrary_a inclination_n §_o 2._o we_o find_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o man_n be_v grow_v masterly_a and_o inordinate_a and_o be_v too_o eager_o set_v upon_o their_o object_n and_o hold_v down_o the_o mind_n from_o rise_v high_o and_o cause_v it_o to_o adhere_v to_o thing_n terrene_a so_o that_o man_n life_n now_o be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o bruit_n it_o be_v thing_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o he_o value_v and_o adher_v to_o and_o most_o man_n live_v to_o no_o high_a end_n but_o to_o enjoy_v their_o sensual_a pleasure_n while_o they_o may_v §_o 3._o we_o find_v that_o reason_n in_o most_o man_n be_v so_o debilitate_a that_o it_o can_v potent_o reduce_v itself_o into_o action_n nor_o see_v that_o practical_o which_o speculative_o it_o confess_v nor_o clear_o and_o powerful_o observe_v those_o perfection_n of_o god_n in_o his_o work_n nor_o those_o duty_n of_o man_n which_o we_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v true_a but_o by_o inconsiderateness_n and_o dull_a apprehension_n be_v almost_o as_o no_o reason_n to_o they_o and_o fall_v down_o before_o their_o sensuality_n §_o 4._o hereupon_o man_n grow_v stranger_n unto_o god_n and_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o he_o but_o dark_a and_o dull_a and_o ineffectual_a §_o 5._o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o allurement_n to_o the_o flesh_n and_o those_o mercy_n which_o shall_v raise_v the_o mind_n to_o god_n be_v make_v the_o food_n of_o this_o sensuality_n and_o the_o great_a mean_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o he_o sense_n be_v irrational_a and_o fasten_v on_o its_o object_n and_o when_o reason_n fail_v in_o its_o office_n there_o we_o be_v leave_v like_o dog_n gnaw_v upon_o a_o carrion_n and_o in_o greediness_n fight_v for_o it_o with_o each_o other_o when_o we_o have_v separate_v the_o creature_n from_o god_n in_o our_o mind_n graece_fw-la and_o so_o deprive_v it_o of_o its_o life_n and_o beauty_n which_o fit_v it_o for_o another_o use_n and_o when_o every_o place_n and_o state_n of_o life_n have_v such_o bait_n as_o these_o which_o hourly_o be_v allure_v a_o mind_n so_o weak_o fortify_v against_o they_o no_o wonder_n if_o they_o do_v prevail_v §_o 6._o education_n custom_n and_o ill_a example_n confirm_v these_o vicious_a habit_n with_o the_o most_o and_o much_o increase_v they_o §_o 7._o the_o best_a have_v some_o of_o this_o inordinate_a sensuality_n and_o weakness_n of_o reason_n and_o be_v imperfect_a in_o virtue_n and_o be_v tempt_v by_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o other_o §_o 8._o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v live_v to_o god_n according_a to_o his_o certain_a duty_n who_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o desire_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bring_v it_o into_o subjection_n and_o live_v in_o vigilancy_n and_o daily_a conflict_n against_o its_o lust_n obj._n but_o the_o appetite_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o sleep_v and_o ease_n and_o venery_n and_o sport_n and_o pleasure_n and_o gain_v and_o honour_n be_v natural_a to_o we_o and_o that_o which_o be_v natural_a be_v no_o vice_n nor_o to_o be_v deny_v or_o destroy_v answ_n it_o be_v natural_a to_o have_v the_o appetite_n but_o it_o be_v the_o disease_n of_o nature_n that_o this_o appetite_n be_v inordinate_a and_o no_o otherwise_o natural_a than_o the_o leprosy_n be_v to_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v propagate_v by_o their_o parent_n but_o be_v it_o natural_a to_o you_o to_o have_v lust_n and_o appetite_n and_o be_v it_o not_o natural_a to_o you_o to_o have_v reason_n to_o moderate_v and_o rule_v they_o if_o not_o it_o be_v natural_a to_o you_o to_o be_v bruit_n and_o not_o natural_a to_o you_o to_o be_v man_n what_o be_v more_o natural_a to_o man_n than_o to_o be_v rational_a be_v it_o not_o his_o essential_a form_n and_o whether_o be_v reason_n or_o appetite_n think_v you_o natural_o make_v to_o be_v the_o predominant_a faculty_n shall_v the_o horse_n rule_v the_o rider_n or_o the_o rider_n the_o horse_n the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v much_o like_o the_o rider_n and_o the_o horse_n bethink_v you_o which_o shall_v natural_o rule_v 29._o §_o 9_o the_o inordinacy_n of_o the_o fleshly_a appetite_n and_o fantasy_n make_v it_o a_o continual_a pain_n to_o the_o flesh_n to_o be_v restrain_v and_o deny_v as_o it_o be_v to_o a_o headstrong_a wilful_a horse_n to_o be_v govern_v the_o more_o inordinate_a the_o appetite_n be_v the_o more_o it_o be_v pain_v by_o denial_n and_o restraint_n §_o 10._o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n do_v live_v a_o ungodly_a sensual_a life_n and_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v predominant_a in_o they_o sad_a experience_n put_v this_o quite_o out_o of_o controversy_n §_o 11._o usual_o 1._o the_o more_o riches_n and_o fullness_n of_o all_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n man_n possess_v the_o more_o sensual_a and_o vicious_a they_o be_v it_o be_v not_o always_o so_o but_o that_o its_o usual_o so_o we_o need_v no_o proof_n but_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o need_v we_o take_v it_o from_o christ_n only_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o its_o hard_a for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o reason_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n above_o god_n be_v the_o mortal_a sin_n those_o be_v most_o in_o danger_n of_o it_o to_o who_o the_o world_n appear_v most_o lovely_a and_o they_o that_o have_v most_o temptation_n be_v in_o the_o great_a danger_n to_o miscarry_v §_o 12._o the_o rich_a be_v common_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v the_o liberty_n estate_n and_o life_n of_o other_o much_o in_o their_o power_n i_o never_o yet_o know_v or_o hear_v of_o that_o place_n where_o the_o poor_a long_o rule_v §_o 13._o common_o the_o more_o averse_a man_n be_v to_o godliness_n and_o the_o more_o prone_a to_o sensuality_n the_o less_o can_v they_o endure_v those_o that_o will_v persuade_v they_o to_o godliness_n from_o their_o sensual_a life_n or_o that_o give_v they_o the_o example_n of_o a_o holy_a self-denying_a life_n for_o as_o it_o seem_v intolerable_a to_o they_o to_o leave_v their_o sensuality_n and_o to_o betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o contrary_a life_n which_o they_o be_v so_o averse_a to_o so_o they_o take_v he_o as_o a_o enemy_n to_o they_o that_o will_v draw_v they_o to_o it_o and_o be_v furious_a against_o he_o as_o a_o hungry_a dog_n against_o he_o that_o will_v take_v away_o his_o carrion_n experience_n put_v this_o past_a all_o doubt_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o §_o 14._o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o fore-described_n life_n of_o godliness_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o common_a hatred_n scorn_n and_o cruel_a persecution_n of_o the_o sensual_a and_o ungodly_a the_o more_o exact_o any_o man_n shall_v set_v himself_o to_o obey_v god_n verity_n the_o more_o he_o cross_v the_o lust_n and_o carnal_a interest_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o more_o he_o common_o suffer_v in_o the_o world_n so_o full_a of_o malice_n and_o prejudice_n be_v the_o world_n against_o such_o faithful_a subject_n of_o god_n that_o they_o slander_v they_o and_o make_v they_o seem_v the_o most_o odious_a sort_n of_o man_n and_o so_o unreasonable_a be_v they_o and_o
via_n and_o manifold_a mercy_n help_n and_o mean_n do_v general_o persuade_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n that_o there_o be_v certain_a duty_n require_v of_o they_o and_o certain_a mean_n to_o be_v use_v by_o they_o in_o order_n to_o procure_v their_o recovery_n and_o salvation_n and_o to_o escape_v the_o misery_n deserve_v he_o that_o shall_v deny_v this_o will_v turn_v the_o earth_n into_o a_o hell_n he_o will_v teach_v man_n to_o forbear_v all_o mean_n and_o duty_n which_o tend_v to_o their_o conversion_n pardon_n and_o salvation_n and_o to_o justify_v themselves_o in_o it_o and_o desperate_o give_v over_o all_o religion_n and_o begin_v the_o horror_n and_o language_n of_o the_o damn_a 110._o §_o 9_o the_o very_a command_n of_o god_n to_o use_v his_o appoint_a mean_n for_o man_n recovery_n do_v imply_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o do_v not_o only_o show_v a_o possibility_n but_o so_o great_a a_o hopefulness_n of_o the_o success_n to_o the_o obedient_a as_o may_v encourage_v they_o cheerful_o to_o undertake_v it_o and_o carry_v it_o through_o no_o man_n that_o be_v wise_a and_o merciful_a will_v appoint_v his_o subject_n a_o course_n of_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v for_o a_o thing_n impossible_a to_o be_v get_v or_o will_v say_v labour_v thus_o all_o thy_o life_n for_o it_o but_o thou_o shall_v be_v never_o the_o near_o it_o if_o thou_o do_v if_o such_o a_o omniscient_a physician_n do_v but_o bid_v i_o use_v such_o mean_n for_o my_o cure_n and_o health_n i_o may_v take_v his_o command_n for_o half_a a_o promise_n if_o i_o obey_v temn_v §_o 10._o conscience_n do_v bear_v witness_n against_o impenitent_a sinner_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o hindrance_n of_o their_o recovery_n be_v in_o themselves_o and_o that_o god_n be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o forgive_v and_o save_v they_o if_o they_o be_v but_o meet_v for_o forgiveness_n and_o salvation_n even_o now_o man_n conscience_n take_v god_n part_n against_o themselves_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o infinite_a good_a that_o communicate_v all_o the_o goodness_n to_o the_o creature_n which_o it_o have_v be_v not_o so_o likely_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o odious_a a_o thing_n as_o sin_n nor_o of_o man_n destruction_n as_o he_o himself_o if_o i_o see_v a_o sheep_n lie_v tear_v in_o the_o highway_n i_o will_v soon_o suspect_v the_o wolf_n than_o a_o lamb_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n if_o i_o see_v they_o both_o stand_v by_o and_o if_o i_o see_v a_o child_n drown_v in_o scald_a water_n i_o will_v soon_o suspect_v that_o he_o fall_v in_o by_o folly_n and_o heedlessness_n himself_o than_o that_o his_o mother_n wilful_o cast_v he_o in_o be_v not_o silly_a naughty_a man_n much_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n than_o the_o wise_a and_o gracious_a god_n much_o more_o hereafter_o will_v the_o sinner_n conscience_n justify_v god_n §_o 11._o god_n have_v plant_v in_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o mankind_n a_o inseparable_a inclination_n to_o truth_n as_o truth_n and_o to_o good_a as_o good_a and_o a_o love_n to_o themselves_o and_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v happy_a and_o a_o lothness_n to_o be_v miserable_a together_o with_o some_o reverence_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n till_o they_o have_v extinguish_v the_o belief_n of_o his_o be_v and_o a_o hatred_n and_o horror_n of_o the_o devil_n while_o they_o believe_v he_o be_v all_o which_o be_v a_o fit_a stock_n to_o plant_v reforming-truth_n in_o and_o principle_n fit_a to_o be_v improve_v for_o man_n conversion_n juven_o and_o the_o excitation_n and_o improvement_n of_o they_o be_v much_o of_o that_o recover_a work_n §_o 12._o frequent_a and_o deep_a consideration_n be_v a_o great_a mean_n of_o man_n recovery_n by_o improve_n the_o truth_n which_o he_o consider_v and_o restore_a reason_n to_o the_o throne_n it_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n to_o man_n that_o he_o be_v natural_o a_o reason_v and_o thoughtful_a creature_n his_o intellect_n be_v propense_a to_o activity_n and_o knowledge_n §_o 13._o and_o it_o be_v his_o great_a advantage_n that_o his_o frequent_a and_o great_a affliction_n have_v a_o great_a tendency_n to_o awake_v his_o reason_n to_o consideration_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o heart_n and_o make_v it_o effectual_a and_o consequent_o that_o god_n cast_v we_o into_o such_o a_o sea_n and_o wilderness_n of_o trouble_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v these_o quicken_a monitor_n still_o at_o hand_n §_o 14._o and_o it_o be_v man_n great_a advantage_n for_o his_o recovery_n that_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n be_v so_o legible_o write_v on_o all_o thing_n here_o below_o and_o that_o frustrate_v expectation_n and_o unsatisfy_a mind_n and_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o end_n of_o all_o and_o bodily_a pain_n which_o find_v no_o ease_n with_o multitude_n of_o bitter_a experience_n do_v so_o abundant_o help_v he_o to_o escape_v the_o snare_n the_o love_n of_o present_a thing_n for_o all_o man_n that_o perish_v be_v condemn_v for_o love_v the_o creature_n above_o the_o creator_n and_o therefore_o such_o a_o world_n which_o appear_v so_o evident_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o empty_a 25._o and_o deceitful_a and_o vexatious_a and_o which_o all_o man_n know_v will_v turn_v they_o off_o at_o last_o with_o as_o little_a comfort_n as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o see_v a_o day_n of_o pleasure_n in_o it_o i_o say_v such_o a_o world_n one_o will_v think_v shall_v give_v we_o a_o antidote_n against_o its_o own_o deceit_n and_o sufficient_o wean_v we_o from_o its_o inordinate_a love_n at_o least_o this_o be_v a_o very_a great_a advantage_n §_o 15._o it_o be_v also_o a_o common_a and_o great_a advantage_n for_o man_n recovery_n that_o his_o life_n here_o be_v so_o short_a and_o his_o death_n so_o certain_a as_o that_o reason_n must_v needs_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n be_v also_o short_a and_o that_o he_o shall_v always_o live_v as_o part_v with_o this_o world_n and_o ready_a to_o enter_v into_o another_o the_o nearness_n of_o thing_n make_v they_o to_o work_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n the_o more_o powerful_o distant_a thing_n though_o sure_a and_o great_a do_v hardly_o awaken_v the_o mind_n to_o their_o reception_n and_o due_a consideration_n if_o man_n live_v 600_o or_o 1000_o year_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o covetousness_n and_o carnality_n and_o security_n make_v they_o like_o devil_n and_o worse_o than_o wild_a beast_n to_o one_o another_o but_o when_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o know_v that_o they_o must_v certain_o and_o short_o see_v the_o end_n of_o all_o that_o ever_o this_o world_n will_v do_v for_o they_o and_o be_v never_o sure_a of_o another_o hour_n this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o help_n to_o sober_a consideration_n and_o conversion_n that_o it_o must_v be_v monstrous_a stupidity_n and_o brutishness_n that_o must_v overcome_v it_o ●70_n §_o 16._o it_o be_v also_o a_o great_a advantage_n for_o man_n conversion_n that_o all_o the_o world_n reveal_v god_n to_o he_o and_o every_o thing_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o constant_a presence_n and_o so_o show_v he_o a_o object_n which_o shall_v as_o easy_o overpower_v all_o sensual_a object_n which_o will_v seduce_v his_o soul_n as_o a_o mountain_n will_v weigh_v down_o a_o feather_n though_o we_o see_v not_o god_n which_o will_v sure_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o controversy_n whether_o we_o shall_v be_v sensual_a or_o holy_a yet_o while_o we_o have_v a_o glass_n as_o big_a as_o all_o the_o world_n which_o do_v continual_o represent_v he_o to_o we_o one_o will_v think_v that_o no_o reasonable_a creature_n shall_v so_o much_o overlook_a he_o as_o to_o be_v carry_v from_o he_o with_o the_o trifle_n of_o this_o world_n §_o 17._o man_n that_o have_v not_o only_o the_o foresay_a obligation_n to_o holiness_n justice_n and_o sobriety_n in_o their_o nature_n but_o also_o all_o these_o hope_n and_o help_v and_o mean_n of_o their_o recovery_n from_o sin_n to_o god_n and_o yet_o frustrate_a all_o and_o continue_v in_o ungodliness_n unrighteousness_n or_o intemperance_n impenitent_o to_o the_o end_n be_v utter_o destitute_a of_o all_o just_a excuse_n why_o god_n shall_v not_o punish_v they_o with_o endless_a misery_n which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o all_o that_o perish_v §_o 18._o all_o man_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n which_o be_v give_v they_o of_o god_n to_o live_v by_o for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o law_n which_o be_v regula_n officii_fw-la &_o judicii_fw-la god_n will_v not_o condemn_v man_n for_o not_o believe_v a_o truth_n which_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o be_v never_o reveal_v to_o they_o and_o which_o they_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v nor_o for_o not_o obey_v a_o law_n which_o be_v never_o promulgate_v to_o they_o
in_o captivity_n yet_o how_o unlikely_a they_o be_v to_o prevail_v with_o other_o both_o reason_n and_o experience_n full_o testify_v §_o 12._o and_o whereas_o god_n special_a mercy_n and_o grace_n be_v necessary_a to_o so_o great_a a_o change_n and_o cure_v and_o this_o grace_n be_v forfeit_v by_o sin_n and_o every_o sin_n deserve_v more_o punishment_n and_o this_o sin_n and_o punishment_n must_v be_v so_o far_o forgive_v before_o god_n can_v give_v we_o that_o grace_n which_o we_o have_v forfeit_v nature_n do_v not_o satisfactory_o teach_v i_o how_o god_n be_v so_o far_o reconcile_v to_o man_n nor_o how_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v by_o we_o so_o far_o procure_v senec._n §_o 13._o and_o where_o as_o i_o see_v at_o once_o in_o the_o world_n both_o the_o a●o●ing_n of_o sin_n which_o deserve_v damnation_n and_o the_o abound_a of_o mercy_n to_o these_o that_o be_v under_o such_o desert_n i_o be_o not_o satisfy_v by_o the_o halt_n of_o nature_n how_o god_n be_v so_o far_o reconcile_v and_o the_o end_n of_o government_n and_o justice_n attain_v as_o to_o deal_v with_o the_o world_n so_o contrary_a to_o its_o desert_n §_o 14._o and_o while_o i_o be_o in_o this_o doubt_n of_o god_n reconciliation_n i_o be_o ready_a still_o to_o fear_v list_v present_a forbearance_n and_o mercy_n ●rt_v a●i●val_n and_o will_v end_v at_o last_o in_o great_a misery_n however_o i_o find_v it_o hard_o if_o not_o impossible_a to_o come_v to_o any_o certainty_n of_o 〈◊〉_d pardon_n and_o salvation_n §_o 15._o and_o while_o i_o be_o thus_o uncertain_a of_o pardon_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o make_v it_o a_o insuperable_a difficulty_n to_o i_o to_o love_n god_n above_o myself_o and_o all_o thing_n for_o to_o love_v a_o god_n that_o i_o think_v will_v damn_v i_o or_o most_o probable_o may_v do_v it_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v be_v a_o thing_n that_o man_n can_v hardly_o do_v §_o 16._o 3._o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v see_v how_o the_o guilty_a world_n can_v be_v sanctify_v nor_o bring_v to_o forsake_v the_o sin_n and_o vanity_n which_o they_o love_v as_o long_o as_o god_n who_o they_o must_v turn_v to_o by_o love_n do_v seem_v so_o unlovely_a to_o they_o §_o 17._o and_o every_o temptation_n from_o present_a pleasure_n commodity_n or_o honour_n will_v be_v like_a to_o prevail_v while_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o happiness_n to_o come_v be_v so_o dark_a and_o doubtful_a to_o guilty_a misgive_a ignorant_a soul_n §_o 18._o nor_o can_v i_o see_v by_o nature_n how_o a_o sinner_n can_v live_v comfortable_o in_o the_o world_n for_o want_v of_o clear_a assurance_n of_o his_o future_a happiness_n for_o if_o he_o do_v but_o say_v as_o poor_a seneca_n cicero_n and_o other_o such_o be_v most_o like_a that_o there_o be_v another_o life_n for_o we_o but_o we_o be_v not_o sure_a it_o will_v both_o abate_v their_o comfort_n in_o the_o fore-thought_n of_o it_o and_o tempt_v they_o to_o venture_v upon_o present_a pleasure_n for_o fear_v of_o lose_v all_o and_o if_o they_o be_v never_o so_o confident_a of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o own_o part_n in_o it_o as_o not_o know_v whether_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v still_o their_o comfort_n in_o it_o will_v be_v small_a and_o the_o world_n can_v give_v they_o no_o more_o than_o be_v proportionable_a to_o so_o small_a and_o momentany_a a_o thing_n §_o 19_o nor_o do_v i_o see_v in_o nature_n any_o full_a and_o suitable_a support_n against_o the_o pain_n and_o fear_n of_o suffering_n and_o death_n while_o man_n doubt_v of_o that_o which_o shall_v support_v they_o §_o 20._o i_o must_v therefore_o conclude_v that_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v suitable_a to_o uncorrupted_a reason_n and_o will_v and_o to_o a_o undepraved_a mind_n be_v too_o insufficient_a to_o the_o corrupt_a vitiate_a guilty_a world_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o some_o recover_a medicinal_a revelation_n which_o force_v the_o very_a heathen_n to_o fly_v to_o oracle_n idol_n sacrifice_n and_o religious_a propitiation_n of_o the_o god_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o nation_n which_o have_v not_o some_o such_o thing_n though_o they_o use_v they_o not_o only_o uneffectual_o but_o to_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o strengthen_v their_o presumption_n as_o too_o many_o poor_a ignorant_a christian_n now_o do_v their_o mass_n and_o other_o such_o formality_n and_o superstition_n but_o as_o arnobius_n say_v adv_o gentes_fw-la l._n 7._o crescit_fw-la enim_fw-la multitudo_fw-la peccantium_fw-la cum_fw-la redimendi_fw-la peccati_fw-la spes_fw-la datur_fw-la &_o facile_fw-la itur_fw-la ad_fw-la culpas_fw-la ubi_fw-la est_fw-la venalis_fw-la ignoscentium_fw-la gratia_fw-la he_o that_o hope_v to_o purchase_v forgiveness_n with_o money_n or_o sacrifice_n or_o way_n of_o cost_n will_v strive_v rather_o to_o be_v rich_a than_o to_o be_v innocent_a chap._n ii_o of_o the_o several_a religion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v finish_v my_o inquiry_n into_o the_o state_n and_o book_n of_o nature_n i_o find_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o inquire_v what_o other_o man_n think_v in_o the_o world_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o several_a belief_n that_o if_o they_o know_v more_o than_o i_o have_v discover_v by_o what_o mean_v soever_o i_o may_v become_v partaker_n of_o it_o §_o 1._o and_o first_o i_o find_v that_o all_o the_o world_n except_o those_o call_v heathen_n be_v conscious_a of_o the_o necessity_n of_o supernatural_a revelation_n yea_o the_o heathen_n themselves_o have_v some_o common_a apprehension_n of_o it_o §_o 2._o four_o sort_n of_o religion_n i_o find_v only_o considerable_a upon_o earth_n the_o mere_a naturalist_n call_v common_o heathen_n and_o idolater_n the_o jew_n the_o mahometan_n and_o the_o christian_n the_o heathen_n by_o their_o oracle_n augur_n and_o aruspices_fw-la confess_v the_o necessity_n of_o some_o supernatural_a light_n and_o the_o very_a religion_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n consist_v in_o it_o i._o §_o 3._o as_o for_o the_o heathen_n i_o find_v this_o much_o good_a among_o they_o that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v have_v a_o very_a great_a care_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o many_o have_v use_v exceed_v industry_n in_o seek_v after_o knowledge_n especial_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o some_o of_o they_o have_v bend_v their_o mind_n high_a to_o know_v god_n and_o the_o invisible_a world_n that_o they_o common_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o life_n of_o retribution_n after_o death_n and_o among_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o the_o sum_n of_o that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v though_o confuse_o which_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n especial_o in_o seneca_n cicero_n plutarch_n plato_n plotinus_n earth_n jamblicus_n proclus_n porphyry_n julian_n the_o apostate_n antoninus_n epectetus_n arrian_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o their_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n and_o moral_a virtue_n the_o christian_a bishop_n carry_v themselves_o respectful_o to_o many_o of_o they_o as_o basil_n to_o libanius_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o their_o day_n many_o of_o their_o philosopher_n be_v honour_v by_o the_o christian_a emperor_n or_o at_o least_o by_o the_o inferior_a magistrate_n and_o christian_a people_n who_o judge_v that_o so_o great_a worth_n deserve_v honour_n and_o that_o the_o confession_n of_o so_o much_o truth_n deserve_v answerable_a love_n especial_o aedesius_n julianus_n cappadox_n proaeresius_n maximus_n libanius_n acacius_n chrysanthus_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o christian_n ever_o since_o have_v make_v great_a use_n of_o their_o write_n in_o their_o school_n especial_o of_o aristotle_n and_o plato_n with_o their_o follower_n §_o 4._o and_o i_o find_v that_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o be_v not_o so_o foolish_a as_o that_o of_o the_o vulgar_a but_o they_o think_v that_o the_o universe_n be_v one_o animate_v world_n and_o that_o the_o universal_a soul_n be_v the_o only_a absolute_a sovereign_a god_n who_o they_o describe_v much_o like_a as_o christian_n do_v and_o that_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n and_o earth_n and_o each_o particular_a orb_n be_v a_o individual_a animal_n part_n of_o the_o universal_a world_n and_o beside_o the_o universal_a have_v each_o one_o a_o subordinate_a particular_a soul_n which_o they_o worship_v as_o a_o subordinate_a particular_a deity_n as_o some_o christian_n do_v the_o angel_n and_o their_o image_n they_o set_v up_o for_o such_o representation_n by_o which_o they_o think_v these_o god_n delight_v to_o be_v remember_v and_o instrumental_o to_o exercise_v their_o virtue_n for_o the_o help_n of_o earthly_a mortal_n §_o 5._o i_o find_v that_o except_o these_o philosopher_n and_o very_o few_o more_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o heathen_n be_v and_o be_v foolish_a idolater_n and_o ignorant_a sensual_a brutish_a man_n at_o this_o day_n through_o the_o
covenant_n of_o grace_n confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o abundant_a uncontrolled_a miracle_n contemn_v the_o world_n he_o expose_v himself_o to_o the_o malice_n and_o fury_n and_o contempt_n of_o sinner_n and_o give_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o a_o ransom_n for_o we_o in_o suffer_v death_n on_o a_o cross_n to_o reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n he_o be_v bury_v and_o go_v in_o soul_n to_o the_o soul_n depart_v and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o rise_v again_o have_v conquer_v death_n and_o after_o forty_o day_n have_v instruct_v and_o authorize_v his_o apostle_n in_o their_o office_n he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n in_o their_o sight_n where_o he_o remain_v glorify_v and_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o prophet_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n intercede_v for_o we_o teach_v and_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n minister_n and_o word_n 5._o the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n which_o christ_n have_v procure_v make_v and_o seal_v by_o his_o blood_n 1.11_o his_o sacrament_n and_o his_o spirit_n be_v this_o that_o to_o all_o they_o who_o by_o true_a repentance_n and_o faith_n do_v forsake_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n their_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n he_o will_v give_v himself_o in_o these_o relation_n and_o take_v they_o as_o his_o reconcile_a child_n pardon_v their_o sin_n and_o give_v they_o his_o grace_n and_o title_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o will_v glorify_v all_o that_o thus_o persevere_v but_o will_v condemn_v the_o unbeliever_n impenitent_a and_o ungodly_a to_o everlasting_a punishment_n this_o covenant_n he_o have_v command_v his_o minister_n to_o proclaim_v and_o offer_v to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o baptize_v all_o that_o consent_n thereunto_o to_o invest_v they_o sacramental_o in_o all_o these_o benefit_n and_o enter_v they_o into_o his_o holy_a catholic_n church_n 6._o the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n do_v first_o inspire_v and_o guide_v the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n that_o they_o may_v true_o and_o full_o reveal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o deliver_v it_o in_o scripture_n to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o by_o abundance_n of_o evident_a uncontrolled_a miracle_n and_o gift_n to_o be_v the_o great_a witness_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n 7._o where_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v know_v the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v by_o it_o illuminate_v the_o mind_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o open_v and_o soften_a their_o heart_n do_v draw_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o turn_v they_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n whereupon_o they_o be_v join_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o into_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n consist_v of_o all_o true_a believer_n and_o be_v free_o justify_v and_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o a_o sanctify_a peculiar_a people_n unto_o he_o and_o do_v love_n he_o above_o all_o and_o serve_v he_o sincere_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n love_v and_o desire_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n overcome_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o live_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o everlasting_a life_n 8._o at_o death_n the_o soul_n of_o the_o justify_v go_v to_o happiness_n with_o christ_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a to_o misery_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n will_v come_v again_o and_o will_v raise_v the_o body_n of_o all_o man_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o will_v judge_v all_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o good_a or_o evil_n which_o they_o have_v do_v 17.24_o and_o the_o righteous_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a life_n where_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n glory_n and_o be_v perfect_v in_o holiness_n shall_v love_v and_o praise_n and_o please_v he_o perfect_o and_o be_v love_v by_o he_o for_o evermore_o and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a punishment_n with_o the_o devil_n ii_o according_a to_o this_o belief_n we_o do_v deliberate_o and_o serious_o by_o unfeigned_a consent_n of_o will_n take_v this_o one_o god_n prayer_n the_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n for_o our_o only_a god_n our_o reconcile_a father_n our_o saviour_n and_o our_o sanctifier_n and_o resolve_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o he_o according_o entering_z into_z his_o church_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o solemnisation_n of_o this_o covenant_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o prosecution_n of_o this_o covenant_n we_o proceed_v to_o stir_v up_o our_o desire_n by_o daily_a prayer_n to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o order_n follow_v 1._o we_o desire_v the_o glorify_v and_o hallow_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v know_v and_o love_v and_o honour_v by_o the_o world_n and_o may_v be_v well-pleased_n in_o we_o and_o we_o may_v delight_v in_o he_o which_o be_v our_o ultimate_a end_n 2._o that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v enlarge_v and_o his_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n as_o to_o the_o perfect_v church_n of_o the_o sanctify_a may_v come_v that_o mankind_n may_v more_o universal_o subject_n themselves_o to_o god_n their_o creator_n and_o redeemer_n and_o be_v save_v by_o he_o 3._o that_o this_o earth_n which_o be_v grow_v too_o like_a to_o hell_n may_v be_v make_v like_a to_o the_o holy_a one_o in_o heaven_n by_o a_o holy_a conformity_n to_o god_n will_v and_o obedience_n to_o all_o his_o law_n deny_v and_o mortify_v their_o own_o fleshly_a desire_n will_n and_o mind_n 4._o that_o our_o nature_n may_v have_v necessary_a support_n protection_n and_o provision_n in_o our_o daily_a service_n of_o god_n and_o passage_n through_o this_o world_n with_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v content_a 5._o that_o all_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v we_o through_o our_o redeemer_n as_o we_o ourselves_o be_v ready_a to_o pardon_v wrong_n 6._o that_o we_o may_v be_v keep_v from_o temptation_n and_o deliver_v from_o sin_n and_o misery_n from_o satan_n from_o wicked_a man_n and_o from_o ourselves_o conclude_v our_o prayer_n with_o the_o joyful_a praise_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n acknowledge_v his_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o iii_o the_o law_n of_o christian_a practice_n be_v these_o 1._o 21.18_o that_o our_o soul_n do_v firm_o adhere_v to_o god_n our_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n by_o faith_n love_n confidence_n and_o delight_n that_o we_o seek_v he_o by_o desire_n obedience_n and_o hope_n meditate_v on_o himself_o his_o word_n and_o work_n of_o creation_n redemption_n and_o sanctification_n of_o death_n judgement_n heaven_n and_o hell_n exercise_v repentance_n and_o mortify_a sin_n especial_o atheism_n unbelief_n and_o unholiness_n hardness_n of_o heart_n disobedience_n and_o unthankfulness_n pride_n worldliness_n and_o flesh-pleasing_a examine_v our_o heart_n about_o our_o grace_n our_o duty_n and_o our_o sin_n watchful_o govern_v our_o thought_n affection_n passion_n sense_n appetite_n word_n and_o outward_a action_n resist_v temptation_n and_o serve_v god_n with_o all_o our_o faculty_n and_o glorify_v he_o in_o our_o heart_n our_o speech_n and_o our_o life_n 2._o that_o we_o worship_v god_n according_a to_o his_o holiness_n and_o his_o word_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o not_o with_o foppery_n and_o imagery_n according_a to_o our_o own_o device_n which_o may_v dishonour_v he_o and_o lead_v we_o to_o idolatry_n 3._o that_o we_o ever_o use_v his_o name_n with_o special_a reverence_n especial_o in_o appeal_n to_o he_o by_o a_o oath_n abhor_v profaneness_n perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o vow_n and_o covenant_n to_o god_n 4._o that_o we_o meet_v in_o holy_a assembly_n for_o his_o more_o solemn_a worship_n where_o the_o pastor_n teach_v his_o word_n to_o their_o flock_n and_o lead_v they_o in_o prayer_n and_o praise_n to_o god_n administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o communion_n and_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o holy_a thing_n who_o the_o people_n must_v hear_v obey_v and_o honour_v especial_o the_o lord_n day_n must_v be_v thus_o spend_v in_o holiness_n 5._o that_o parent_n educate_v their_o child_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o obedience_n of_o his_o law_n and_o that_o prince_n master_n and_o all_o superior_n govern_v in_o holiness_n and_o justice_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o common_a good_a according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o that_o child_n love_v honour_n and_o obey_v their_o parent_n and_o all_o subject_n their_o ruler_n in_o due_a subordination_n unto_o god_n 39_o 6._o that_o
error_n it_o be_v a_o way_n that_o reason_n teach_v all_o man_n in_o the_o try_v of_o any_o question_a point_n to_o reduce_v it_o to_o those_o that_o be_v unquestionable_a and_o see_v whether_o or_o no_o they_o accord_v with_o those_o and_o to_o mark_v the_o unquestionable_a end_n of_o religion_n and_o try_v how_o it_o suit_v its_o mean_n thereunto_o and_o therefore_o man_n of_o all_o sober_a profession_n have_v their_o determinate_a principle_n and_o end_n by_o which_o they_o try_v such_o particular_a opinion_n as_o christian_n do_v by_o their_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o trial_n of_o christianity_n i_o shall_v tell_v you_o what_o i_o find_v it_o §_o 1._o i_o find_v in_o general_a that_o there_o be_v a_o admirable_a concord_n between_o natural_a verity_n and_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o grace_n be_v medicinal_a to_o nature_n and_o that_o where_o natural_a light_n end_v supernatural_a begin_v and_o that_o the_o superstructure_n which_o christ_n have_v build_v upon_o nature_n be_v wonderful_o adapt_v to_o its_o foundation_n this_o be_v make_v manifest_a in_o all_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n reason_n which_o be_v our_o nature_n be_v not_o destroy_v but_o repair_v illuminate_v elevate_v and_o improve_v by_o the_o christian_a faith_n freewill_n which_o be_v our_o nature_n be_v make_v more_o excellent_o free_a by_o christianity_n self-love_n which_o be_v our_o nature_n be_v not_o destroy_v but_o improve_v by_o right_a conduct_n and_o help_v to_o our_o attainment_n of_o its_o end_n the_o natural_a part_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v abrogate_a by_o christianity_n that_o the_o latter_a do_v but_o subserve_v the_o former_a christ_n be_v the_o way_n to_o god_n the_o father_n the_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v by_o nature_n to_o our_o creator_n we_o owe_v he_o still_o and_o christ_n come_v to_o enable_v and_o teach_v we_o to_o perform_v it_o the_o love_n of_o god_n our_o creator_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n be_v still_o our_o duty_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v but_o the_o mean_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bellows_o to_o kindle_v that_o holy_a fire_n the_o redeemer_n come_v to_o recover_v we_o to_o our_o creator_n he_o take_v not_o the_o book_n of_o the_o creature_n or_o nature_n out_o of_o our_o hand_n but_o teach_v we_o better_a to_o read_v and_o use_v it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v through_o all_o the_o rest_n citation_n §_o 2._o i_o find_v also_o that_o the_o state_n of_o this_o present_a world_n be_v exceed_o suitable_a to_o the_o scripture-character_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v exceed_o evil_a and_o a_o deluge_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n do_v declare_v its_o great_a necessity_n of_o a_o saviour_n and_o show_v it_o still_o to_o be_v a_o place_n unmeet_a to_o be_v the_o home_n and_o happiness_n of_o saint_n al._n of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o god_n creation_n this_o earth_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v next_o to_o hell_n certain_o it_o be_v great_o defile_v with_o sin_n and_o overwhelm_v with_o manifold_a calamity_n and_o though_o god_n have_v not_o total_o forsake_v it_o nor_o turn_v away_o his_o mercy_n as_o he_o have_v do_v from_o hell_n yet_o be_v he_o much_o estrange_v from_o it_o so_o that_o those_o who_o be_v not_o recover_v by_o grace_n be_v next_o to_o devil_n unknown_a and_o alas_o how_o numerous_a and_o considerable_a be_v they_o to_o denominate_v it_o an_o evil_n world_n those_o that_o christ_n call_v out_o of_o it_o he_o sanctify_v and_o make_v they_o unlike_o the_o world_n and_o his_o grace_n do_v not_o give_v they_o a_o worldly_a felicity_n nor_o settle_v they_o in_o a_o rest_n or_o kingdom_n here_o but_o it_o save_v they_o from_o this_o world_n as_o from_o a_o place_n of_o snare_n and_o a_o company_n of_o cheater_n robber_n and_o murderer_n and_o from_o a_o tempestuous_a sea_n who_o wave_n seem_v ready_a still_o to_o drown_v we_o i._o i_o find_v it_o be_v a_o world_n of_o sin_n ii_o and_o of_o temptation_n iii_o and_o of_o calamity_n i._o for_o sin_n it_o be_v become_v as_o it_o be_v its_o nature_n it_o live_v with_o man_n from_o the_o birth_n to_o the_o grave_n it_o be_v a_o ignorant_a world_n that_o wander_v in_o darkness_n and_o yet_o a_o proud_a self-conceited_a world_n that_o will_v not_o be_v convince_v of_o its_o ignorance_n and_o be_v never_o more_o furious_o confident_a than_o when_o it_o be_v most_o deceive_v and_o most_o blind_a even_o natural_a wisdom_n be_v so_o rare_a and_o folly_n have_v the_o major_a vote_n and_o strength_n that_o wise_a man_n be_v weary_v with_o resist_a folly_n and_o ready_a in_o discouragement_n to_o leave_v the_o foolish_a world_n unto_o itself_o as_o a_o incurable_a bedlam_n so_o fierce_a be_v fool_n against_o instruction_n and_o so_o hard_o be_v it_o to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v ignorant_a or_o to_o convince_v man_n of_o their_o mistake_n and_o error_n the_o learner_n think_v his_o teacher_n dote_v propert._n and_o he_o that_o have_v but_o wit_n enough_o to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o a_o bruit_n be_v as_o confident_a as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o doctor_n the_o learned_a themselves_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o half-witted_a man_n who_o either_o take_v up_o with_o lazy_a study_n eur._n or_o else_o have_v the_o disadvantage_n of_o uncapable_a temperature_n and_o wit_n or_o of_o unhappy_a teacher_n and_o false_a principle_n receive_v by_o ill_a education_n which_o keep_v out_o truth_n so_o that_o they_o be_v but_o fit_v to_o trouble_v the_o world_n with_o their_o contention_n or_o deceive_v man_n by_o their_o error_n and_o yet_o have_v they_o not_o the_o acquaintance_n with_o their_o ignorance_n which_o may_v make_v they_o learn_v of_o such_o as_o can_v instruct_v they_o but_o if_o there_o be_v among_o many_o but_o one_o that_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v think_v to_o be_v unfit_a to_o live_v among_o they_o if_o he_o will_v not_o deny_v his_o knowledge_n 13._o and_o own_o their_o error_n and_o confess_v that_o modesty_n and_o order_n require_v that_o either_o the_o high_a or_o the_o major_a vote_n be_v the_o master_n of_o truth_n and_o all_o be_v false_a that_o be_v against_o their_o opinion_n it_o be_v a_o atheistical_a ungodly_a world_n that_o know_v not_o its_o maker_n or_o forget_v contemn_v and_o wilful_o disobey_v he_o while_o in_o word_n it_o do_v confess_v he_o and_o yet_o a_o hypocritical_a world_n that_o will_v speak_v honourable_o of_o god_n life_n and_o of_o virtue_n and_o piety_n of_o justice_n and_o charity_n while_o they_o be_v neglect_v and_o reject_v they_o and_o can_v endure_v the_o practice_n of_o that_o which_o their_o tongue_n commend_v almost_o all_o sort_n will_v prefer_v the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o word_n when_o indeed_o they_o utter_o neglect_v it_o and_o prefer_v the_o fleshly_a pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n they_o cry_v out_o of_o the_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o they_o set_v their_o heart_n upon_o it_o and_o love_v it_o better_o than_o god_n and_o the_o world_n to_o come_v they_o will_v have_v some_o religion_n to_o mock_v god_n and_o deceive_v themselves_o which_o shall_v go_v no_o deep_o than_o the_o knee_n and_o tongue_n in_o form_n or_o ceremony_n or_o a_o dissemble_a affection_n and_o profession_n but_o to_o be_v devote_v absolute_o to_o god_n in_o self-resignation_n obedience_n and_o love_n how_o rare_a be_v it_o even_o in_o they_o who_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n itself_o do_v primary_o and_o undeniable_o oblige_v they_o to_o it_o their_o religion_n be_v but_o self-condemnation_n while_o their_o tongue_n condemn_v their_o heart_n and_o life_n it_o be_v a_o sensual_a brutish_a world_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v hire_v out_o their_o reason_n to_o the_o service_n of_o their_o appetite_n and_o lust_n gluttony_n and_o excess_n of_o drink_n and_o sport_n and_o play_n and_o game_n with_o pride_n and_o wantonness_n and_o fornication_n and_o uncleanness_n and_o worldly_a pomp_n and_o the_o covetous_a gather_n of_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o satisfy_v these_o lust_n be_v the_o business_n and_o pleasure_n of_o their_o life_n and_o if_o you_o tell_v they_o of_o reason_n 1._o or_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o take_v they_o off_o you_o may_v almost_o as_o well_o think_v to_o reason_v a_o hungry_a dog_n from_o his_o carrion_n or_o a_o lustful_a boar_n to_o forbear_v his_o lust_n and_o it_o be_v a_o selfish_a world_n where_o every_o man_n be_v as_o a_o idol_n to_o himself_o and_o affect_v to_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o interest_n as_o if_o he_o be_v all_o the_o world_n draw_v all_o that_o he_o can_v from_o other_o to_o fill_v his_o own_o insatiable_a desire_n love_v all_o man_n and_o honour_v and_o esteem_v and_o praise_v they_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o esteem_n of_o he_o or_o their_o
agreeableness_n to_o his_o opinion_n way_n or_o interest_n self-love_n self-conceit_n self-esteem_a self-will_n and_o self-seeking_a be_v the_o soul_n and_o business_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n that_o it_o be_v a_o divide_a and_o contentious_a world_n when_o it_o have_v as_o many_o end_n as_o man_n and_o every_o man_n be_v for_o himself_o and_o draw_v his_o own_o way_n no_o wonder_n that_o there_o be_v such_o variety_n of_o apprehension_n that_o no_o two_o man_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n of_o a_o mind_n and_o that_o the_o world_n be_v like_o a_o company_n of_o drunken_a man_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n or_o of_o blind_a man_n fight_v with_o they_o know_v not_o who_o and_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o and_o that_o ignorant_a sect_n and_o contentious_a wrangler_n and_o furious_a fighter_n be_v the_o bulkie_a part_n of_o it_o and_o that_o strive_v who_o shall_v rule_v or_o be_v great_a or_o have_v his_o will_n be_v the_o world_n employment_n it_o be_v a_o dream_v and_o distract_a world_n that_o spend_v their_o day_n and_o care_n for_o nothing_o and_o be_v as_o serious_a in_o follow_v a_o feather_n and_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o that_o which_o they_o confess_v be_v vanity_n and_o die_v in_o their_o hand_n as_o if_o indeed_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a felicity_n they_o be_v like_o child_n busy_a in_o hunt_a butterfly_n or_o like_o boy_n at_o football_n as_o eager_a in_o the_o pursuit_n and_o in_o overturning_a one_o another_o as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o their_o life_n or_o for_o some_o great_a desirable_a prize_n or_o like_a to_o a_o heap_n of_o ant_n that_o gad_n about_o as_o busy_o and_o make_v as_o much_o ado_n for_o stick_n and_o dust_n as_o if_o they_o be_v about_o some_o magnificent_a work_n thus_o do_v the_o vain_a deceive_v world_n lie_v out_o their_o thought_n and_o time_n upon_o impertinency_n and_o talk_v and_o walk_v like_o so_o many_o noctambulo_n in_o their_o sleep_n they_o study_v and_o care_n and_o weep_v and_o laugh_v and_o labour_n and_o fight_v as_o man_n in_o a_o dream_n and_o will_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v but_o it_o be_v reality_n which_o they_o pursue_v till_o death_n come_v and_o awake_v they_o like_o a_o stage-play_a fine_a or_o a_o poppet-play_a where_o all_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v not_o and_o all_o party_n seem_v to_o do_v what_o they_o do_v not_o and_o then_o depart_v and_o be_v all_o disrobe_v and_o unmask_v such_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o most_o of_o this_o world_n who_o spend_v their_o day_n in_o a_o serious_a jest_n and_o in_o a_o busy_a do_v nothing_o it_o be_v a_o malignant_a world_n that_o have_v a_o inbred_a radicate_v enmity_n to_o all_o that_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n which_o they_o want_v they_o be_v so_o captivate_v to_o their_o fleshly_a pleasure_n and_o worldly_a interest_n that_o the_o first_o sight_n approach_n or_o motion_n of_o reason_n holiness_n mortification_n and_o self-denial_n be_v meet_v by_o they_o with_o heart-rising_a indignation_n and_o opposition_n in_o which_o their_o fury_n bear_v down_o all_o argument_n and_o neither_o give_v they_o leave_v considerate_o to_o use_v their_o own_o reason_n or_o hearken_v to_o another_o there_o be_v few_o that_o be_v true_o wise_a and_o good_a and_o heavenly_a that_o escape_v their_o hatred_n and_o beastly_a rage_n and_o when_o country_n have_v think_v to_o remedy_v this_o plague_n by_o change_v their_o form_n of_o government_n experience_n have_v tell_v they_o that_o the_o vice_n and_o root_n of_o their_o calamity_n lie_v in_o the_o blindness_n and_o wickedness_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n which_o no_o form_n of_o government_n will_v cure_v and_o that_o the_o dove_n that_o be_v govern_v by_o hawk_n and_o kite_n must_v be_v their_o prey_n fur_n whether_o it_o be_v one_o or_o many_o that_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n yea_o it_o be_v a_o unthankful_a world_n that_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o malignant_a cruelty_n will_v begin_v with_o those_o that_o deserve_v best_o at_o their_o hand_n he_o that_o will_v instruct_v they_o and_o stop_v they_o in_o their_o sin_n and_o save_v their_o soul_n do_v ordinary_o make_v himself_o a_o prey_n 108._o and_o they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o take_v away_o their_o life_n but_o they_o will_v among_o their_o credulous_a rabble_n take_v away_o the_o reputation_n of_o their_o honesty_n and_o no_o wisdom_n or_o learning_n be_v ever_o so_o great_a no_o innocency_n so_o unspotted_a no_o honesty_n justice_n or_o charity_n so_o untainted_a no_o holiness_n so_o venerable_a that_o can_v ever_o privilege_v the_o owner_n from_o their_o rage_n or_o make_v the_o possessor_n to_o escape_v their_o malice_n even_o jesus_n christ_n that_o never_o commit_v sin_n and_o that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n with_o the_o most_o matchless_a love_n and_o to_o do_v they_o the_o great_a good_a be_v yet_o prosecute_v furious_o to_o a_o shameful_a death_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o in_o his_o humiliation_n his_o judgement_n be_v take_v away_o and_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o evil_a doer_n who_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n to_o sin_n that_o ever_o be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n he_o be_v accuse_v of_o blasphemy_n for_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n of_o impiety_n for_o talk_v of_o destroy_v the_o temple_n and_o of_o treason_n for_o say_v he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o go_v about_o the_o world_n to_o save_v man_n soul_n and_o proclaim_v to_o they_o the_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n have_v little_o better_a entertainment_n wherever_o they_o come_v bond_n and_o affliction_n do_v abide_v they_o and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v teach_v to_o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n they_o can_v have_v expect_v little_a joy_n on_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_a christian_n that_o be_v thus_o use_v but_o honesty_n in_o the_o heathen_n be_v usual_o meet_v with_o opposition_n and_o reproach_n as_o seneca_n himself_o do_v oft_o complain_v yea_o how_o few_o have_v there_o be_v that_o have_v be_v famous_a for_o any_o excellency_n of_o wit_n or_o learning_n or_o any_o addition_n to_o the_o world_n understanding_n but_o their_o reward_n have_v be_v reproach_n imprisonment_n or_o death_n do_v socrates_n die_v in_o his_o bed_n or_o be_v he_o not_o murder_v by_o the_o rage_n of_o wicked_a hypocrite_n plato_n dare_v not_o speak_v his_o mind_n inquisition_n for_o fear_v of_o his_o master_n reward_n aristippus_n leave_v athens_n ne_fw-la bis_fw-la peccarent_fw-la in_o philosophiam_fw-la not_o only_o solon_n but_o most_o benefactor_n to_o any_o commonwealth_n have_v suffer_v for_o their_o beneficence_n demosthenes_n cato_n cicero_n seneca_n can_v none_o of_o they_o save_o their_o life_n from_o fury_n by_o their_o great_a learning_n or_o honesty_n yea_o among_o nominal_a christian_n he_o that_o tell_v they_o of_o a_o antipode_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o papal_a authority_n for_o a_o heretic_n and_o a_o savonarola_n arnoldus_fw-la de_fw-fr villa_n nova_fw-la paulus_n scaliger_n etc._n etc._n can_v not_o be_v wise_a than_o their_o neighbour_n but_o to_o their_o cost_n no_o nor_o arias_n montanus_n himself_o campanella_n be_v fain_o in_o prison_n to_o compile_v his_o new_a philosophy_n and_o with_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o invention_n to_o bear_v the_o torment_n which_o be_v their_o sour_a sauce_n even_o galilaeus_fw-la that_o discover_v so_o many_o new_a orb_n and_o teach_v this_o world_n the_o way_n of_o clear_a acquaintance_n with_o its_o neighbour_n can_v not_o escape_v the_o reverend_a justice_n of_o the_o papalist_n but_o must_v lie_v in_o a_o prison_n as_o if_o o_fw-la sapientia_fw-la have_v be_v write_v on_o his_o door_n as_o the_o old_a woman_n cry_v out_o to_o thales_n when_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o ditch_n while_o he_o be_v by_o his_o instrument_n take_v the_o height_n of_o a_o star_n and_o sir_n walter_n raleigh_n can_v not_o save_v his_o head_n by_o his_o learned_a history_n of_o the_o world_n but_o must_v be_v one_o part_n of_o its_o history_n himself_o nor_o yet_o by_o his_o great_a observation_n 6._o how_o antipater_n be_v take_v for_o a_o bloody_a tyrant_n for_o kill_v demosthenes_n supr_n and_o how_o art_n and_o learning_n have_v power_n to_o disgrace_v any_o man_n that_o do_v evil_a to_o the_o famous_a master_n of_o they_o peter_n ramus_n that_o have_v do_v so_o much_o in_o philosophy_n for_o the_o learned_a world_n be_v requite_v by_o a_o butcherly_a barbarous_a murder_n be_v one_o of_o the_o 30000_o or_o 40000_o that_o be_v so_o use_v in_o the_o french_a massacre_n and_o many_o a_o holy_a person_n perish_v in_o the_o 200000_o murder_v by_o the_o irish_a it_o be_v endless_a to_o instance_n the_o ungrateful_a cruelty_n of_o the_o world_n and_o what_o entertainment_n it_o have_v give_v to_o wise_a and_o godly_a man_n even_o those_o who_o it_o superstitious_o adore_v when_o it_o have_v murder_v they_o and_o in_o all_o
so_o do_v prove_v the_o divine_a approbation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n without_o which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v the_o command_n of_o man_n soul_n 7._o note_v also_o that_o the_o gospel_n propose_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n both_o truth_n and_o goodness_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o order_n to_o the_o good_a and_o subservient_fw-fr to_o it_o that_o christ_n be_v indeed_o the_o saviour_n and_o his_o word_n infallible_o true_a be_v believe_v that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o of_o the_o grace_n and_o glory_n promise_v and_o when_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o gospel_n have_v regenerate_v and_o renew_v any_o soul_n he_o have_v give_v he_o part_n of_o that_o grace_n in_o possession_n and_o have_v procreate_v in_o he_o the_o habitual_a love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o holiness_n with_o a_o love_n to_o that_o saviour_n and_o holy_a word_n which_o bring_v he_o to_o it_o so_o that_o this_o love_n be_v now_o become_v as_o a_o new_a nature_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o this_o be_v do_v the_o soul_n cleave_v now_o as_o fast_o to_o christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n by_o love_n as_o by_o belief_n not_o that_o love_n become_v a_o irrational_a causeless_a love_n nor_o continue_v without_o the_o continuance_n of_o belief_n or_o belief_n without_o the_o reason_n and_o evidence_n of_o verity_n and_o credibility_n but_o love_v now_o by_o concurrence_n great_o assist_v faith_n itself_o and_o be_v the_o fast_o hold_v of_o the_o two_o so_o that_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v very_o weak_a in_o its_o reason_v faculty_n and_o may_v oft_o lose_v the_o sight_n of_o these_o evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o it_o do_v once_o perceive_v may_v still_o hold_v fast_o by_o this_o holy_a love_n as_o the_o man_n that_o by_o reason_v have_v be_v convince_v that_o honey_n be_v sweet_a will_v easy_o change_v his_o mind_n than_o he_o that_o have_v taste_v it_o so_o love_n be_v the_o soul_n taste_v which_o cause_v its_o fast_o adherence_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o gospel_n if_o a_o caviller_n dispute_v with_o a_o love_a child_n or_o parent_n or_o friend_n to_o alienate_v their_o heart_n from_o one_o another_o and_o will_v persuade_v they_o that_o it_o be_v but_o dissemble_a love_n that_o be_v profess_v to_o they_o by_o their_o relation_n and_o friend_n love_n will_v do_v more_o here_o to_o hinder_v the_o belief_n of_o such_o a_o slander_n than_o reason_n alone_o can_v do_v and_o where_o reason_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o answer_v all_o that_o the_o caviller_n can_v say_v yet_o love_n may_v be_v strong_a enough_o to_o reject_v it_o and_o here_o i_o must_v observe_v how_o oft_o i_o have_v note_v the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o abundance_n of_o poor_a people_n who_o reason_a faculty_n will_v have_v fail_v they_o in_o temptation_n to_o atheism_n and_o infidelity_n if_o they_o have_v not_o have_v a_o strong_a hold_n than_o that_o and_o their_o faith_n have_v not_o be_v radicate_v in_o the_o will_n by_o love_n i_o have_v know_v a_o great_a number_n of_o woman_n who_o never_o read_v a_o treatise_n that_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n nor_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v a_o crafty_a infidel_n that_o yet_o in_o the_o very_a decay_a time_n of_o nature_n at_o fourscore_o year_n of_o age_n and_o upward_o have_v live_v in_o that_o sense_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o in_o such_o love_n to_o he_o and_o to_o their_o saviour_n as_o that_o they_o have_v long_v to_o die_v and_o be_v with_o christ_n and_o live_v in_o all_o humility_n charity_n and_o piety_n such_o blameless_a exemplary_a heavenly_a life_n in_o the_o joyful_a expectation_n of_o their_o change_n as_o have_v show_v the_o firmness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o love_n and_o experience_n which_o be_v in_o they_o will_v have_v reject_v a_o temptation_n to_o atheism_n and_o unbelief_n more_o effectual_o than_o the_o strong_a reason_n alone_o can_v ever_o do_v yet_o none_o have_v cause_n to_o reproach_v such_o and_o say_v their_o will_n lead_v their_o understand_n and_o they_o customary_o and_o obstinate_o believe_v they_o know_v not_o why_o for_o they_o have_v know_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v and_o their_o understanding_n have_v be_v illuminate_v to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o it_o be_v this_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n which_o breed_v their_o love_n and_o experience_n but_o when_o that_o be_v do_v as_o love_n be_v the_o more_o noble_a and_o perfect_a operation_n of_o the_o soul_n have_v the_o most_o excellent_a object_n so_o it_o will_v act_v more_o powerful_o and_o prevail_o and_o have_v the_o strong_a hold_n nor_o be_v all_o they_o without_o light_n and_o reason_n for_o their_o belief_n who_o can_v form_v it_o into_o argument_n and_o answer_v all_o that_o be_v say_v against_o it_o obj._n but_o may_v not_o all_o this_o which_o you_o call_v regeneration_n and_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v the_o mere_a power_n of_o fantasy_n and_o affectation_n and_o may_v not_o all_o these_o people_n force_v themselves_o like_o melancholy_a person_n to_o conceit_n that_o they_o have_v that_o which_o indeed_o they_o have_v not_o answ_n 1._o procure_v they_o be_v not_o melancholy_a person_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o but_o those_o that_o be_v as_o capable_a as_o any_o other_o to_o know_v their_o own_o mind_n and_o what_o be_v upon_o their_o own_o heart_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o million_o 3._o nature_n have_v give_v man_n so_o great_a acquaintance_n with_o himself_o by_o a_o power_n of_o perceive_v his_o own_o operation_n that_o his_o own_o cogitation_n and_o desire_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o natural_o he_o can_v know_v and_o therefore_o if_o he_o can_v know_v they_o he_o can_v know_v nothing_o if_o i_o can_v know_v what_o i_o think_v and_o what_o i_o love_v and_o hate_n i_o can_v know_v nothing_o at_o all_o 4._o that_o they_o be_v real_o mind_v and_o affect_v as_o they_o seem_v and_o have_v in_o they_o that_o love_n to_o god_n and_o heaven_n and_o holiness_n which_o they_o profess_v forth_o they_o show_v to_o all_o the_o world_n by_o the_o effect_n 1._o in_o that_o it_o rule_v the_o main_a course_n of_o their_o life_n and_o dispose_v of_o they_o in_o the_o world_n 2._o in_o that_o these_o apprehension_n and_o affection_n over-rule_v all_o their_o worldly_a fleshly_a interest_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o profit_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o in_o that_o they_o be_v constant_a in_o it_o to_o the_o death_n and_o have_v no_o other_o mind_n in_o their_o distress_n when_o as_o seneca_n say_v nothing_o feign_v be_v of_o long_a continuance_n for_o all_o force_a thing_n be_v bend_v back_o to_o their_o natural_a state_n 4._o in_o that_o they_o will_v lay_v down_o their_o life_n and_o forsake_v all_o the_o world_n for_o the_o hope_n which_o faith_n in_o christ_n beget_v in_o they_o and_o if_o the_o objector_n mean_v that_o all_o this_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o upon_o delusion_n or_o mistake_n that_o they_o raise_v these_o hope_n and_o raise_v these_o affection_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o i_o be_o disprove_v 1._o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o a_o holy_a mind_n and_o life_n be_v not_o a_o dream_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o a_o deliration_n i_o have_v prove_v from_o natural_a reason_n in_o the_o first_o book_n that_o it_o be_v the_o end_n and_o use_v and_o perfection_n of_o man_n faculty_n that_o if_o god_n be_v god_n and_o man_n be_v man_n we_o be_v to_o love_v he_o above_o all_o and_o to_o obey_v he_o as_o our_o absolute_a sovereign_n and_o to_o live_v as_o devote_v to_o he_o and_o to_o delight_v in_o his_o love_n man_n be_v more_o ignoble_a or_o miserable_a than_o a_o beast_n if_o this_o be_v not_o his_o work_n and_o be_v that_o a_o dream_n or_o a_o delusion_n which_o cause_v a_o man_n to_o live_v as_o a_o man_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o be_v make_v for_o and_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o all_o his_o faculty_n 2._o while_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v so_o full_o before_o lay_v down_o from_o natural_a and_o supernatural_a revelation_n the_o objector_n do_v but_o refuse_v to_o see_v in_o the_o open_a light_n when_o he_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o a_o bare_a assertion_n that_o all_o this_o be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o a_o holy_a life_n but_o that_o it_o be_v take_v up_o upon_o mistake_n 3._o all_o the_o world_n be_v convince_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o unholy_a fleshly_a worldly_a life_n which_o be_v the_o dream_n and_o dotage_n and_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o gross_a error_n and_o deceit_n object_n but_o how_o
copious_o prove_v numen_fw-la coeleste_fw-la rerum_fw-la humanarum_fw-la curam_fw-la gerere_fw-la nec_fw-la universi_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la sed_fw-la hominum_fw-la etiam_fw-la singulorum_fw-la &_o rerum_fw-la quoque_fw-la singularum_fw-la rebus_fw-la humanis_fw-la praesto_fw-la esse_fw-la generique_a humano_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la bona_fw-la veer_fw-la sic_fw-la dicta_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la huius_fw-la commoda_fw-la &_o adminicula_fw-la suppetitias_fw-la far_o deum_fw-la itaque_fw-la ante_fw-la omne_fw-la colendum_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la invocandum_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la cogitandum_fw-la in_fw-la omnilus_fw-la agnoscendum_fw-la &_o comprobandum_fw-la de_fw-la omnibus_fw-la laudandum_fw-la &_o celebrandum_fw-la huic_fw-la uni_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la negotio_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la obsequendum_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la quicquid_fw-la obvenerit_fw-la animo_fw-la prompto_fw-la ac_fw-la lubenti_fw-la excipiendum_fw-la atque_fw-la amplexandum_fw-la nihil_fw-la mellus_fw-la nihil_fw-la convenientius_fw-la nihil_fw-la conducibilius_fw-la nihil_fw-la opportunius_fw-la aut_fw-la tempestivius_fw-la quam_fw-la id_fw-la quicquid_fw-la existat_fw-la quodipse_n voluerit_fw-la existimandum_fw-la qu●cunque_fw-la ducere_fw-la visum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la citra_fw-la tergiversationem_fw-la aut_fw-la murmurationem_fw-la sponte_fw-la sequendum_fw-la locum_fw-la stationemque_fw-la quemcunque_fw-la be_v assignaverit_fw-la strenuè_fw-fr tuendum_fw-la enixè_fw-la tenendum_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la mortem_fw-la millies_fw-la oppetere_fw-la oporteret_fw-la haec_fw-la de_fw-la numine_fw-la stoici_fw-la &_o erga_fw-la numen_fw-la affectu_fw-la de_fw-fr homine_fw-la &_o officiis_fw-la hunc_fw-la &_o corditus_fw-la diligere_fw-la &_o curare_fw-la &_o sustinere_fw-la injuriaque_fw-la omni_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la impietatis_fw-la etiam_fw-la notam_fw-la inurat_fw-la abstinere_fw-la &_o beneficentia_fw-la prosequi_fw-la nec_fw-la sibi_fw-la soli_fw-la genitum_fw-la censere_fw-la se_fw-la aut_fw-la vivere_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o common_a bonum_fw-la ac_fw-la beneficium_fw-la cunciis_fw-la pro_fw-la facultate_fw-la viribusque_fw-la semet_fw-la exhibere_fw-la re_fw-la ipsa_fw-la reique_fw-la bene_fw-la gestae_fw-la conscientia_fw-la nec_fw-la hac_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la quadantenus_fw-la reputata_fw-la citra_fw-la vestem_fw-la aut_fw-la mercedis_fw-la spem_fw-la commodive_n proprii_fw-la intuitum_fw-la contentum_fw-la agere_fw-la à_fw-la beneficio_fw-la uno_fw-la praestito_fw-la ad_fw-la aliud_fw-la transire_fw-la nec_fw-la unquam_fw-la benefaciendo_fw-la defatisci_fw-la sed_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la telam_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vivendi_fw-la fructus_fw-la hic_fw-la sit_fw-la benefactis_fw-la si●i_fw-la inuicem_fw-la continenter_fw-la annexis_fw-la ita_fw-la totum_fw-la pertexere_fw-la ut_fw-la nusquam_fw-la interveniat_fw-la hiatus_fw-la ullus_fw-la vel_fw-la minimus_fw-la beneficii_fw-la loco_fw-la quod_fw-la benefecerit_fw-la habentem_fw-la sibique_fw-la profuisse_fw-la existimantem_fw-la si_fw-la alii_fw-la cviquam_fw-la usui_fw-la esse_fw-la poterit_fw-la nec_fw-la extra_fw-la se_fw-la proinde_fw-la quicquam_fw-la vel_fw-la laudis_fw-la humanae_fw-la vel_fw-la lucelli_fw-la aut_fw-la aucupantem_fw-la aut_fw-la expetentem_fw-la ad_fw-la haec_fw-la nihil_fw-la mentis_fw-la cultu_fw-la antiquus_fw-la nihil_fw-la honesti_fw-la study_v petius_fw-la aut_fw-la pretiosius_fw-la habere_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la denique_fw-la quod_fw-la officii_fw-la svi_fw-la esse_fw-la norit_fw-la nulla_fw-la vel_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la nedum_fw-la alius_fw-la rei_fw-la cujuspiam_fw-la cupidine_fw-la abducendum_fw-la nulla_fw-la mortis_fw-la cruciatusve_fw-la illius_fw-la ne_fw-la dum_fw-la damni_fw-la aut_fw-la detrimenti_fw-la formidine_fw-la abigendum_fw-la se_fw-la permittere_fw-la haec_fw-la stoicorum_fw-la praecepta_fw-la sunt_fw-la when_o will_v the_o whole_a tribe_n of_o the_o epicurean_o ever_o give_v the_o world_n such_o a_o prince_n as_o antonine_n who_o teach_v the_o world_n that_o a_o prince_n shall_v be_v a_o philosopher_n and_o that_o self-government_n and_o a_o well-ordered_a mind_n and_o life_n be_v the_o first_o point_n in_o the_o government_n and_o well-ordering_a of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o monarchy_n may_v be_v so_o use_v as_o to_o consist_v as_o well_o with_o the_o people_n interest_n and_o liberty_n as_o the_o most_o accurate_a venetian_a democraty_n the_o only_a hurt_n that_o ever_o he_o be_v charge_v to_o do_v be_v this_o that_o he_o live_v so_o well_o that_o he_o seem_v somewhat_o to_o hinder_v the_o succeed_a lustre_n of_o christianity_n even_o in_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n themselves_o and_o as_o for_o the_o stoic_n great_a doctrine_n of_o virtue_n self-sufficiency_n to_o felicity_n which_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n also_o own_o against_o the_o epicurean_a felicity_n of_o pleasure_n it_o be_v undoubted_o a_o very_a great_a and_o sacred_a theological_a verity_n but_o it_o imply_v a_o high_a truth_n love_v which_o i_o have_v vindicate_v in_o this_o treatise_n viz._n that_o man_n have_v a_o ultimate_a end_n above_o himself_o and_o that_o god_n for_o all_o that_o he_o be_v perfect_a and_o can_v receive_v no_o addition_n of_o felicity_n be_v both_o his_o own_o and_o our_o end_n ☞_o though_o intendere_fw-la finem_fw-la be_v not_o speak_v univocal_o of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o that_o his_o goodness_n as_o essential_a in_o himself_o we_o and_o as_o his_o own_o perfection_n be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o our_o conception_n much_o high_a than_o his_o benignity_n or_o goodness_n as_o relate_v to_o the_o good_a of_o man_n i_o have_v read_v some_o late_a self-esteeming_a writer_n who_o love_v not_o to_o be_v name_v by_o way_n of_o opposition_n who_o have_v undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o epicurean_a heresy_n that_o pleasure_n be_v formal_o both_o man_n felicity_n and_o his_o ultimate_a end_n but_o their_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v not_o half_a so_o handsome_a and_o adapt_v to_o deceive_v as_o the_o discourse_n of_o torquatus_n in_o cicero_n de_fw-fr finib_fw-la be_v which_o indeed_o may_v seem_v very_o plausible_a till_o cicero_n excellent_a answer_n be_v compare_v with_o it_o it_o be_v a_o fair_a pretence_n to_o say_v that_o a_o good_a man_n be_v please_v with_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o that_o true_a pleasure_n be_v to_o be_v find_v especial_o in_o virtue_n and_o that_o temperance_n and_o chastity_n shall_v be_v more_o pleasant_a than_o excess_n and_o luxury_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o best_a man_n when_o they_o do_v any_o great_a and_o excellent_a work_n do_v therefore_o do_v it_o because_o it_o please_v they_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o bonum_fw-la qua_fw-la bonum_fw-la est_fw-la objectum_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la good_a and_o appetibile_fw-la be_v the_o same_o it_o be_v first_o good_a because_o it_o please_v we_o but_o it_o please_v we_o because_o it_o be_v esteem_v by_o we_o to_o be_v good_a and_o the_o great_a good_n shall_v greathe_v please_v we_o because_o it_o be_v first_o the_o great_a good_a and_o as_o god_n in_o himself_o be_v infinite_o better_a than_o any_o delight_n or_o felicity_n of_o we_o so_o be_v he_o therefore_o to_o be_v more_o the_o object_n of_o our_o delight_n and_o as_o the_o good_a of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o kingdom_n or_o of_o thousand_o be_v better_a than_o the_o pleasure_n of_o one_o individual_a person_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v better_o love_v and_o more_o delight_v in_o for_o if_o good_a as_o good_a be_v appetible_a and_o delectable_a than_o the_o great_a good_n must_v have_v the_o great_a love_n and_o pleasure_n and_o nature_n itself_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o rather_o be_v annihilate_v than_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v annihilate_v or_o will_v not_o lose_v his_o life_n and_o honour_n to_o save_v the_o life_n and_o honour_n and_o felicity_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n be_v no_o good_a member_n of_o civil_a society_n but_o a_o person_n blind_v by_o selfishness_n and_o sensuality_n therefore_o man_n have_v something_o above_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o seek_v and_o to_o take_v pleasure_n in_o how_o far_o you_o can_v congruous_o say_v that_o you_o take_v pleasure_n in_o your_o pleasure_n and_o so_o make_v your_o own_o pleasure_n the_o object_n yea_o the_o only_a ultimate_a object_n of_o itself_o i_o shall_v not_o now_o stay_v to_o inquire_v but_o certain_a i_o be_o that_o though_o our_o love_n which_o be_v our_o complacency_n in_o the_o belove_a object_n be_v our_o actus_fw-la finalis_fw-la yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o objectum_fw-la finale_fw-la to_o itself_o but_o god_n himself_o the_o infinite_a good_a be_v that_o final_a object_n and_o the_o public_a good_a be_v a_o more_o noble_a and_o excellent_a object_n than_o our_o own_o and_o though_o it_o be_v true_o our_o felicity_n to_o love_n god_n yet_o we_o love_v he_o not_o chief_o because_o it_o be_v our_o felicity_n to_o love_v he_o but_o because_o he_o be_v chief_o good_a and_o lovely_a and_o then_o in_o the_o second_o instant_n we_o love_v our_o own_o love_n and_o delight_v even_o in_o our_o own_o delight_n indeed_o the_o sensitive_a life_n as_o such_o can_v seek_v nothing_o high_a than_o its_o own_o delight_n but_o the_o rational_a life_n be_v make_v to_o intend_v and_o prosecute_v that_o end_n which_o reason_n tell_v we_o be_v best_o and_o to_o prefer_v that_o before_o ourselves_o which_o be_v better_o than_o ourselves_o and_o therefore_o the_o epicurean_a opinion_n which_o make_v pleasure_n our_o high_a end_n do_v show_v that_o the_o sect_n be_v sensual_a and_o brutish_a and_o have_v bring_v their_o reason_n into_o servitude_n to_o their_o appetite_n and_o
when_o they_o have_v here_o and_o in_o other_o such_o write_n find_v our_o fundamental_o prove_v let_v they_o hereafter_o excuse_v our_o superstructure_n and_o not_o think_v that_o every_o sermon_n must_v be_v spend_v in_o prove_v our_o christianity_n and_o creed_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n i_o give_v you_o no_o testimony_n from_o the_o christian_a write_n or_o authority_n because_o i_o suppose_v the_o reader_n to_o be_v one_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o and_o my_o business_n be_v only_o to_o prove_v natural_a verity_n by_o their_o proper_a evidence_n but_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o legible_a in_o nature_n because_o the_o wise_a heathen_n see_v it_o not_o i_o have_v cite_v in_o the_o margin_n their_o attestation_n to_o most_o particular_n to_o show_v that_o indeed_o they_o do_v confess_v the_o same_o though_o less_o distinct_o and_o clear_o than_o they_o may_v have_v do_v as_o i_o have_v plain_o prove_v but_o be_v many_o year_n separate_v from_o my_o book_n i_o be_v force_v to_o do_v this_o part_n less_o exact_o than_o i_o will_v have_v do_v have_v i_o be_v near_o my_o own_o or_o any_o other_o library_n again_o i_o serious_o profess_v that_o i_o be_o so_o confident_a of_o the_o just_a proof_n and_o evidence_n of_o truth_n here_o give_v that_o i_o fear_v nothing_o as_o to_o frustrate_v the_o success_n but_o the_o reader_n be_v incapacity_n through_o half-wittedness_a or_o wickedness_n or_o his_o laziness_n in_o a_o cursory_a and_o negligent_a perusal_n of_o what_o be_v concise_o but_o evident_o propose_v it_o be_v true_a that_o seneca_n say_v magna_fw-la debet_fw-la esse_fw-la eloquentia_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o vitis_fw-la placet_fw-la i_o may_v add_v et_fw-la veritatis_fw-la evidentia_fw-la quae_fw-la caecis_fw-la malignis_fw-la vel_fw-la ignavis_fw-la prodest_fw-la and_o who_o feel_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o hierom_n word_n ad_fw-la paul_n nunquam_fw-la benefit_n quoth_v fit_a praeoccupato_fw-la animo_fw-la be_v true_a and_o faithful_a to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o the_o truth_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v its_o glory_n and_o feel_v its_o power_n and_o be_v direct_v by_o it_o to_o everlasting_a blessedness_n this_o be_v his_o end_n who_o be_v octob._n 31._o 1666._o a_o earnest_a desirer_n of_o mankind_n felicity_n richard_n baxter_n to_o the_o hypocrite_n reader_n who_o have_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o andvnbeliever_n it_o be_v the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o you_o that_o you_o be_v bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n and_o in_o a_o land_n where_o christianity_n be_v the_o profess_a religion_n and_o under_o governor_n and_o law_n which_o countenance_n it_o but_o this_o which_o shall_v have_v help_v you_o to_o the_o intelligent_a and_o serious_a entertainment_n of_o religion_n have_v be_v abuse_v by_o you_o to_o detain_v you_o from_o ●t_a you_o have_v content_v yourselves_o to_o have_v religion_n in_o your_o prince_n and_o your_o parent_n precept_n in_o library_n and_o law_n and_o to_o say_v over_o some_o of_o these_o by_o ●ote_n while_o you_o banish_v it_o from_o your_o heart_n and_o life_n if_o not_o also_o from_o your_o sober_a thought_n and_o understanding_n and_o have_v indeed_o no_o religion_n of_o your_o own_o because_o the_o labour_n of_o understanding_n and_o obey_v it_o seem_v too_o dear_a a_o price_n to_o purchase_v it_o you_o ●ve_v think_v it_o most_o serviceable_a to_o your_o quietness_n and_o your_o reputation_n to_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o your_o parent_n or_o your_o king_n be_v it_o what_o it_o will_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o common_a course_n of_o the_o rude_a and_o irreligious_a rabble_n in_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n o_o that_o i_o may_v be_v your_o effectual_a monitor_n to_o awaken_v you_o to_o consider_v what_o you_o have_v be_v do_v and_o yet_o if_o you_o be_v man_n to_o suffer_v your_o reason_n to_o look_v behind_o you_o within_z you_o and_o before_o you_o and_o serious_o think_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o hell_n for_o ever_o and_o prudent_o to_o manage_v your_o own_o concernment_n can_v you_o think_v that_o that_o man_n have_v any_o religion_n who_o have_v no_o god_n or_o have_v he_o indeed_o a_o god_n who_o prefer_v his_o lust_n or_o wealth_n or_o honour_n or_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n before_o he_o or_o that_o be_v not_o devote_v to_o his_o obedience_n and_o his_o love_n be_v he_o a_o god_n that_o be_v not_o better_a than_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o world_n or_o that_o be_v not_o great_a than_o a_o mortal_a man_n or_o be_v not_o full_o sufficient_a for_o you_o do_v you_o know_v what_o you_o do_v when_o you_o own_v your_o baptismal_a vow_n and_o covenant_n which_o be_v when_o you_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o join_v in_o visible_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n do_v you_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o a_o life_n to_o come_v and_o to_o renounce_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o give_v up_o yourselves_o to_o a_o saviour_n and_o a_o sanctifier_n or_o can_v you_o think_v while_o you_o be_v awake_a and_o sober_a that_o perfidiousness_n will_v save_v you_o and_o be_v take_v by_o god_n instead_o of_o christianity_n will_v god_n accept_v you_o for_o a_o perjure_a profession_n to_o be_v that_o and_o do_v that_o which_o never_o come_v into_o your_o heart_n be_v hypocrisy_n a_o virtue_n and_o will_n lie_v bring_v a_o man_n to_o heaven_n christianity_n be_v such_o a_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o bring_v we_o unto_o god_n and_o everlasting_a glory_n as_o make_v the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o thankful_a obedience_n its_o employment_n and_o a_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n to_o be_v its_o constitution_n and_o its_o trade_n and_o the_o mercy_n of_o this_o life_n to_o be_v but_o our_o travelling-helps_a and_o provision_n for_o a_o better_a and_o the_o interest_n of_o fleshly_a lust_n to_o be_v esteem_v but_o as_o dross_n and_o dung_n be_v this_o the_o life_n which_o you_o live_v or_o which_o you_o hate_v i_o beseech_v you_o sir_n as_o you_o regard_v the_o reputation_n of_o your_o reason_n tell_v we_o why_o you_o will_v profess_v a_o religion_n which_o you_o abhor_v or_o why_o will_v you_o abhor_v a_o religion_n which_o you_o profess_v why_o will_v you_o glory_n in_o the_o part_n of_o a_o parrot_n or_o a_o ape_n to_o say_v over_o a_o few_o word_n or_o move_v your_o body_n while_o you_o detest_v the_o humane_a part_n to_o know_v and_o love_n and_o live_v to_o god_n do_v you_o live_v only_o to_o treasure_n up_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n who_o will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o deed_n rom._n 2.5_o 6._o do_v you_o profess_v yourselves_o christian_n only_o for_o self-condemnation_n to_o be_v witness_n against_o yourselves_o in_o judgement_n that_o you_o wilful_o live_v unchristian_a life_n what_o be_v there_o in_o the_o world_n that_o you_o be_v so_o averse_a to_o as_o to_o be_v serious_o that_o which_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o to_o be_v who_o hate_v you_o more_o than_o those_o that_o be_v that_o in_o heart_n and_o life_n which_o you_o call_v yourselves_o in_o customary_a word_n or_o that_o be_v serious_a in_o the_o religion_n which_o you_o say_v yourselves_o you_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o read_v matth._n 23.29_o 30_o 31._o why_o do_v you_o honour_v the_o dead_a saint_n and_o abhor_v the_o live_n and_o will_v make_v more_o martyr_n while_o you_o keep_v festival_n of_o commemoration_n of_o those_o that_o other_o make_v quae_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la justitia_fw-la sanctos_fw-la colere_fw-la &_o sanctitatem_fw-la contemnere_fw-la primus_fw-la gradus_fw-la pietatis_fw-la est_fw-la sanctitatem_fw-la diligere_fw-la chrysost_n in_o matth._n 24._o christ_n have_v not_o more_o bitter_a enemy_n in_o the_o world_n than_o some_o of_o you_o who_o wear_v his_o livery_n turk_n and_o heathen_n be_v more_o gentle_a to_o true_a christian_n and_o have_v shed_v less_o of_o their_o blood_n than_o hypocrite_n christian_n have_v do_v the_o zeal_n of_o the_o pharisee_n consume_v many_o who_o the_o clemency_n of_o the_o roman_n will_v else_o have_v spare_v be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o the_o infidel_n world_n who_o detest_v christianity_n because_o of_o your_o wickedness_n that_o you_o be_v none_o of_o we_o christ_n renounce_v you_o matth._n 7.22_o 23._o and_o we_o renounce_v you_o they_o may_v as_o well_o hate_v philosophy_n because_o some_o vagrant_a sot_n have_v call_v themselves_o philosopher_n or_o have_v sail_v with_o aristotle_n or_o plato_n in_o the_o same_o ship_n they_o may_v as_o well_o hate_v physic_n because_o many_o ignorant_a woman_n and_o mountebank_n have_v profess_v it_o they_o may_v as_o well_o reproach_n
it_o be_v not_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o move_v and_o another_o which_o illuminate_v and_o another_o which_o heat_v but_o the_o whole_a sun_n if_o it_o be_v whole_o fire_n or_o aethereal_a matter_n do_v move_v the_o whole_a illuminate_v and_o the_o whole_a do_v heat_n and_o motion_n light_n and_o heat_n be_v not_o quality_n inherent_a in_o it_o but_o motion_n illumination_n and_o calefaction_n be_v act_n flow_v immediate_o from_o its_o essence_n as_o contain_v the_o faculty_n or_o power_n of_o such_o act_n he_o that_o can_v write_v a_o perfect_a method_n of_o physics_n and_o morality_n will_v show_v we_o trinity_n in_o unity_n through_o all_o its_o part_n from_o first_o to_o last_o but_o as_o the_o vein_n artery_n and_o nerve_n perfection_n the_o vessel_n of_o the_o natural_a vital_a and_o animal_n humour_n and_o spirit_n be_v easy_o discernible_a in_o their_o trunk_n and_o great_a branch_n but_o not_o so_o when_o they_o be_v minute_n and_o multiply_v into_o thousand_o so_o be_v it_o in_o this_o method_n but_o i_o must_v desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o though_o i_o here_o explain_v this_o trinity_n of_o active_a principle_n in_o the_o divine_a essence_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a to_o natural_a reason_n itself_o as_o to_o be_v past_o all_o controversy_n yet_o whether_o indeed_o the_o trinity_n of_o hypostasis_n or_o person_n which_o be_v part_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o somewhat_o distinct_a from_o this_o be_v a_o question_n which_o here_o i_o be_o not_o to_o meddle_v with_o till_o i_o come_v to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o treatise_n nor_o be_v it_o my_o purpose_n to_o deny_v it_o but_o only_o to_o prepare_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o it_o of_o which_o more_o shall_v there_o afterward_o be_v say_v §_o 32._o and_o thus_o all_o creature_n and_o especial_o ourselves_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v a_o first_o be_v and_o cause_n of_o they_o all_o who_o be_v a_o substance_n life_n a_o spirit_n or_o mind_n a_o active_a power_n understanding_n and_o will_n perfect_a eternal_a independent_a and_o self-sufficient_a not_o compound_v not_o passable_a not_o mutable_a corruptible_a or_o mortal_a immense_a omnipresent_v incomprehensible_a only_o one_o omnipotent_a omniscient_a and_o most_o good_a most_o happy_a in_o be_v himself_o in_o know_v himself_o and_o enjoy_v he_o most_o holy_a transcend_v all_o the_o creature_n of_o a_o perfect_a will_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o moral_a good_a love_n or_o benign_a have_v a_o trinity_n of_o essential_a transcendent_a principle_n in_o unity_n of_o essence_n which_o have_v make_v their_o adumbration_n or_o appearance_n on_o the_o world_n whereof_o though_o he_o be_v not_o the_o constitutive_a form_n or_o soul_n he_o be_v to_o it_o much_o more_o the_o first_o efficient_a dirigent_a and_o ultimate_v final_a cause_n of_o all_o that_o be_v there_o be_v a_o god._n chap._n vi_o of_o god_n as_o relate_v to_o his_o creature_n especial_o to_o man._n and_o i._o as_o his_o owner_n pass_v by_o all_o that_o be_v doubtful_a and_o controvert_v among_o man_n true_o rational_a and_o take_v before_o i_o only_o that_o which_o be_v certain_a undeniable_a and_o clear_a and_o wherein_o my_o own_o soul_n be_v pass_v all_o doubt_n i_o shall_v proceed_v in_o the_o same_o method_n secundum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la cognoscendi_fw-la non_fw-la essendi_fw-la the_o word_n god_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v all_o that_o i_o have_v be_v prove_v viz._n balbus_n the_o perfect_a nature_n of_o the_o first_o cause_n but_o also_o his_o relation_n to_o we_o his_o creature_n and_o therefore_o till_o i_o have_v open_v and_o prove_v those_o relation_n i_o have_v do_v but_o part_n of_o my_o work_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god._n §_o 1._o god_n have_v produce_v man_n and_o all_o the_o world_n by_o his_o power_n understanding_n and_o will_n be_v by_o immediate_a resultancy_n relate_v to_o he_o as_o his_o creator_n though_o he_o make_v his_o body_n of_o pre-existent_a matter_n yet_o be_v that_o matter_n make_v of_o nothing_o and_o therefore_o god_n be_v proper_o man_n creator_n and_o not_o his_o fabricator_n only_o and_o a_o creature_n be_v a_o relation_n which_o infer_v the_o correlate_n a_o creator_n as_o a_o son_n do_v a_o father_n this_o therefore_o be_v god_n first_o grand_a relation_n unto_o man_n which_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o produce_v it_o but_o his_o actual_a creation_n which_o be_v its_o fundamentum_fw-la §_o 2._o this_o grand_a prime_a relation_n infer_v a_o trinity_n of_o grand_a relation_n viz._n that_o god_n be_v our_o owner_n our_o ruler_n and_o our_o benefactor_n of_o which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v in_o order_n that_o these_o three_o be_v just_o distinguish_v from_o each_o other_o be_v past_a doubt_n to_o all_o that_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o term_n a_o owner_n as_o such_o be_v not_o a_o ruler_n or_o benefactor_n a_o ruler_n as_o such_o be_v not_o a_o owner_n or_o a_o benefactor_n a_o benefactor_n as_o such_o be_v neither_o a_o owner_n nor_o a_o ruler_n and_o the_o enumeration_n be_v sufficient_a all_o humane_a affair_n or_o action_n of_o converse_n and_o society_n belong_v to_o man_n in_o one_o of_o these_o three_o relation_n or_o such_o as_o be_v subordinate_a to_o they_o and_o mere_a dependent_n on_o they_o or_o compound_v of_o they_o they_o be_v in_o some_o respect_n the_o genera_n and_o in_o some_o as_o it_o be_v the_o element_n of_o all_o other_o relation_n and_o from_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n they_o be_v apply_v to_o god_n with_o as_o much_o propriety_n of_o speech_n as_o any_o term_n that_o man_n can_v use_v concern_v he_o and_o he_o that_o can_v draw_v a_o true_a scheme_n or_o method_n of_o the_o body_n of_o morality_n or_o theology_n for_o all_o be_v one_o with_o i_o will_v reduce_v all_o the_o deal_n of_o god_n with_o man_n which_o be_v subsequent_a to_o the_o fundamental_a act_n of_o creation_n to_o these_o three_o relation_n and_o according_o distinguish_v of_o they_o all_o yet_o in_o the_o mix_v act_n as_o most_o be_v such_o distinguish_v only_o of_o the_o compound_v element_n i_o mean_v the_o interest_n of_o these_o three_o relation_n as_o make_v up_o the_o several_a act_n §_o 3._o a_o full_a owner_n or_o proprietor_n be_v call_v dominus_fw-la in_o the_o strict_a sense_n and_o be_v one_o that_o have_v a_o jus_fw-la possidendi_fw-la disponendi_fw-la &_o utendi_fw-la a_o right_a of_o have_v or_o possess_v dispose_v and_o use_v without_o any_o copartner_n or_o superior_a proprietor_n to_o restrain_v he_o the_o meaning_n be_v better_a know_v by_o the_o bare_a term_n of_o denomination_n through_o common_a use_n than_o by_o definition_n we_o know_v what_o it_o mean_v when_o a_o man_n say_v of_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v my_o own_o there_o be_v defective_a half-propriety_n of_o copartner_n and_o subordinate_a proprietor_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o our_o present_a case_n the_o word_n dominus_fw-la &_o dominuim_n be_v sometime_o take_v laxe_o as_o comprehend_v both_o propriety_n and_o rule_n and_o sometime_o improper_o for_o government_n or_o command_v itself_o but_o among_o lawyer_n it_o be_v most_o common_o take_v proper_o and_o strict_o for_o a_o owner_n as_o such_o but_o lest_o any_o be_v contentious_a about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n i_o here_o put_v instead_o of_o it_o the_o word_n owner_n and_o proprietor_n as_o be_v more_o free_a from_o ambiguity_n intelligent_a §_o 4._o god_n be_v jure_fw-la creationis_fw-la &_o conservationis_fw-la the_o most_o absolute_a owner_n or_o proprietor_n of_o man_n and_o the_o whole_a creation_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o more_o full_a and_o certain_a title_n to_o propriety_n than_o creation_n and_o total_a conservation_n be_v he_o that_o give_v the_o world_n all_o its_o be_v and_o that_o of_o nothing_o and_o continue_v that_o be_v and_o be_v behold_v to_o no_o pre-existent_a matter_n nor_o to_o any_o coordinate_a concause_n nor_o dependent_a on_o any_o superior_a cause_n in_o his_o causation_n but_o be_v himself_o the_o first_o independent_a efficient_a total_a cause_n of_o be_v and_o well-being_n and_o all_o the_o mean_n thereto_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o absolute_a owner_n of_o all_o without_o the_o least_o limitation_n or_o exception_n it_o be_v not_o the_o supereminency_n of_o god_n nature_n excel_v all_o create_a being_n that_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o his_o propriety_n in_o the_o creature_n for_o excellency_n be_v no_o title_n to_o propriety_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o be_v unicus_fw-la in_o capacitate_v possidendi_fw-la that_o be_v so_o transcendent_o excellent_a as_o to_o have_v no_o copartner_n in_o a_o claim_n may_v by_o occupation_n be_v sole_a proprietor_n in_o that_o kind_n of_o propriety_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la which_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o who_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o wrong_v but_o god_n have_v a_o
ascent_n and_o make_v no_o stay_n in_o these_o low_a act_n otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v privative_o sinful_a §_o 11._o therefore_o god_n multiply_v mercy_n upon_o man_n that_o he_o may_v facilitate_v this_o first_o act_n of_o love_n by_o gratitude_n not_o that_o these_o mercy_n be_v good_a to_o ourselves_o shall_v lead_v we_o to_o love_n god_n ultimate_o for_o ourselves_o but_o they_o shall_v help_v we_o first_o to_o love_v he_o for_o ourselves_o as_o the_o immediate_a passage_n to_o a_o high_a act_n of_o love_n with_o which_o we_o must_v love_v he_o in_o and_o for_o himself_o and_o ourselves_o for_o he_o §_o 12._o therefore_o god_n have_v plant_v into_o our_o nature_n the_o principle_n of_o self-love_n that_o it_o may_v suit_v our_o nature_n to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o make_v they_o sweet_a to_o we_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v arise_v to_o no_o high_a a_o esteem_n of_o they_o but_o that_o this_o sweetness_n in_o they_o which_o respect_v ourselves_o and_o be_v relish_v by_o self-love_n shall_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o fountain_n of_o perfect_a goodness_n from_o which_o they_o flow_v our_o very_a sense_n and_o appetite_n be_v give_v we_o to_o this_o end_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v judge_v by_o no_o high_a faculty_n but_o that_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o patible_a or_o sensible_a quality_n in_o the_o creature_n by_o affect_v the_o sense_n may_v present_o represent_v to_o the_o high_a faculty_n the_o sweetness_n of_o infinite_a goodness_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o so_o we_o may_v by_o all_o ascend_v to_o god_n §_o 13._o those_o mercy_n therefore_o be_v the_o great_a 10._o which_o reveal_v most_o of_o god_n with_o the_o least_o impediment_n of_o our_o ascent_n unto_o he_o §_o 14._o therefore_o his_o love_n most_o reveal_v and_o communicate_v and_o his_o perfect_a goodness_n most_o manifest_v to_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o great_a mercy_n and_o all_o corporal_a mercy_n be_v to_o be_v estimate_v and_o desire_v but_o as_o they_o subserve_v and_o conduce_v to_o these_o and_o not_o as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o our_o flesh_n or_o sense_n §_o 15._o the_o perfect_a goodness_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n though_o it_o contain_v benignity_n and_o mercy_n yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o good_a which_o he_o do_v to_o we_o ourselves_o or_o to_o any_o creature_n but_o its_o high_a excellency_n consist_v in_o its_o essential_a perfection_n and_o the_o perfect_a love_n that_o god_n have_v to_o himself_o and_o in_o the_o conformity_n of_o his_o will_n to_o his_o most_o perfect_a wisdom_n which_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v will_v ad_fw-la extra_fw-la and_o in_o his_o complacency_n in_o all_o that_o be_v good_a as_o such_o leg_n when_o self-love_n so_o far_o blind_v we_o as_o to_o make_v our_o interest_n the_o standard_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n we_o do_v but_o show_v that_o we_o be_v fall_v from_o god_n unto_o ourselves_o and_o that_o we_o be_v set_v up_o ourselves_o above_o he_o and_o debase_v he_o below_o ourselves_o as_o if_o we_o and_o our_o happiness_n be_v that_o ultimate_a end_n and_o he_o and_o his_o goodness_n be_v the_o mean_n and_o have_v no_o other_o goodness_n but_o that_o of_o a_o mean_n to_o we_o and_o our_o felicity_n if_o he_o make_v we_o he_o must_v needs_o have_v absolute_a propriety_n in_o we_o and_o make_v we_o for_o himself_o to_o measure_v his_o goodness_n by_o our_o own_o interest_n be_v more_o unwise_a than_o to_o measure_v the_o sea_n in_o our_o hand_n or_o the_o sun_n and_o all_o the_o orb_n by_o our_o span_n and_o to_o measure_v it_o by_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o universe_n finib_fw-la be_v to_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a by_o that_o which_o be_v finite_a betwixt_o which_o there_o be_v no_o proportion_n as_o god_n be_v infinite_o better_a than_o the_o world_n so_o he_o be_v infinite_o more_o amiable_a and_o therefore_o must_v infinite_o more_o love_n himself_o than_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o so_o to_o do_v be_v infinite_a excellency_n and_o perfection_n in_o his_o will._n but_o the_o out-going_a of_o his_o will_n to_o the_o creature_n by_o way_n of_o causative_a volition_n be_v free_a and_o conduct_v by_o that_o wisdom_n which-knoweth_a what_o be_v fit_a and_o what_o degree_n of_o communication_n be_v most_o eligible_a to_o god_n god_n be_v perfect_a without_o his_o work_n he_o have_v want_v nothing_o if_o he_o have_v never_o make_v they_o he_o will_v not_o herein_o do_v all_o that_o he_o be_v simple_o able_a to_o do_v but_o all_o that_o his_o wisdom_n see_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v he_o be_v as_o good_a before_o he_o make_v the_o world_n as_o since_o and_o those_o that_o think_v he_o cause_v it_o eternal_o must_v confess_v he_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o be_v first_o perfect_v in_o himself_o and_o to_o have_v more_o goodness_n than_o all_o which_o he_o communicate_v to_o the_o world_n he_o be_v as_o good_a before_o this_o present_a generation_n of_o man_n on_o earth_n have_v any_o be_v he_o be_v as_o good_a before_o he_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n as_o he_o will_v be_v after_o otherwise_o though_o before_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o good_a to_o we_o it_o be_v no_o diminution_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o say_v that_o he_o make_v million_o of_o toad_n and_o fly_n and_o spider_n who_o he_o can_v have_v make_v man_n if_o he_o have_v please_v or_o to_o say_v that_o he_o make_v million_o of_o man_n who_o he_o can_v have_v make_v angel_n nor_o that_o he_o make_v not_o every_o clod_n or_o stone_n a_o star_n or_o sun_n nor_o that_o he_o suffer_v man_n to_o be_v torment_v by_o each_o other_o cruelty_n or_o by_o such_o disease_n as_o the_o stone_n and_o strangury_n convulsion_n epilepsy_n etc._n etc._n nor_o that_o man_n at_o last_o must_v die_v and_o their_o body_n rot_v and_o turn_v to_o dust_n that_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v be_v past_a dispute_n and_o that_o god_n be_v good_a be_v past_a dispute_n and_o therefore_o that_o all_o this_o be_v consistent_a with_o this_o goodness_n be_v past_a dispute_n and_o consequent_o that_o his_o goodness_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o so_o low_a a_o thing_n as_o humane_a or_o any_o creature_n interest_n if_o you_o say_v that_o all_o this_o be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o individual_n but_o not_o to_o the_o universe_n to_o which_o it_o be_v better_a that_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o evil_n with_o good_a than_o that_o every_o part_n have_v a_o perfection_n in_o itself_o i_o answer_v 1._o it_o seem_v then_o that_o the_o good_a which_o you_o measure_v god_n goodness_n by_o be_v not_o the_o interest_n of_o any_o individual_a creature_n at_o least_o that_o be_v in_o this_o low_a world_n for_o you_o confess_v that_o the_o good_a which_o will_v make_v it_o happy_a be_v give_v to_o it_o limited_o and_o with_o mixture_n of_o permit_v or_o inflict_v evil_a and_o that_o god_n can_v have_v give_v they_o more_o of_o that_o goodness_n if_o he_o will_v god_n can_v have_v free_v they_o from_o pain_n and_o misery_n yea_o and_o have_v give_v the_o ignorant_a more_o knowledge_n and_o honesty_n and_o grace_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o interest_n that_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o if_o so_o what_o be_v it_o that_o you_o call_v the_o universal_a interest_n sure_o the_o universality_n of_o rational_a creature_n have_v no_o be_v but_o in_o the_o individual_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o individual_n which_o be_v the_o measure_n then_o be_v it_o not_o any_o interest_n or_o welfare_n o_o the_o universe_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o for_o the_o insensible_a creature_n they_o feel_v neither_o good_a nor_o hurt_n and_o therefore_o by_o your_o measure_n shall_v be_v none_o of_o the_o universe_n who_o interest_n be_v the_o measure_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v somewhat_o above_o the_o sensible_a interest_n of_o any_o or_o all_o the_o individual_n which_o you_o call_v the_o bonum_fw-la vniversitatis_fw-la and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o state_n and_o order_n of_o the_o universe_n in_o which_o it_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o divine_a intellect_n and_o to_o the_o volition_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o so_o be_v fit_a for_o he_o to_o take_v complacency_n in_o as_o be_v the_o measure_n and_o reason_n of_o his_o own_o volition_n and_o operation_n which_o he_o fetch_v not_o aliunde_fw-la or_o at_o lest_o which_o be_v unknown_a to_o such_o as_o we_o no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v more_o for_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o individual_n that_o every_o dust_n and_o stone_n and_o fly_v and_o beast_n and_o man_n be_v a_o angel_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o 2._o and_o sure_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o evil_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o god_n can_v have_v
gracious_a or_o glorious_a which_o they_o possess_v be_v certain_o himself_o better_a than_o all_o the_o world_n for_o he_o can_v give_v more_o goodness_n than_o he_o have_v this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v by_o any_o man_n of_o reason_n therefore_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o god_n be_v perfect_o good_n 1._o beside_o his_o perfection_n must_v needs_o be_v proportionable_a we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v eternal_a as_o be_v unquestionable_o demonstrate_v we_o see_v by_o the_o wonderful_a frame_n of_o nature_n that_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o omniscient_a and_o then_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o his_o goodness_n must_v be_v commensurate_a with_o the_o rest_n therefore_o to_o come_v back_o again_o upon_o every_o consequent_a which_o you_o understand_v not_o and_o to_o deny_v a_o fundamental_a principle_n which_o have_v be_v undeniable_o demonstrate_v this_o be_v but_o to_o resolve_v that_o you_o will_v not_o know_v by_o this_o course_n you_o may_v deny_v any_o demonstrate_v truth_n in_o mathematics_n when_o you_o meet_v with_o difficulty_n among_o the_o superstructed_a consequent_n let_v we_o therefore_o methodical_o proceed_v we_o have_v prove_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o goodness_n in_o the_o world_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v best_a himself_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o calamity_n which_o you_o mention_v be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o creature_n have_v all_o those_o imperfection_n libert_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o two_o verity_n be_v consistent_a what_o ever_o difficulty_n appear_v to_o you_o in_o the_o reconcile_n they_o thus_o far_o there_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o doubt_n and_o next_o we_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o the_o measure_n of_o god_n goodness_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o creature_n interest_n and_o yet_o we_o know_v that_o his_o goodness_n incline_v he_o to_o communicate_v goodness_n and_o felicity_n to_o his_o creature_n for_o all_o the_o good_a in_o the_o world_n be_v from_o he_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o he_o be_v good_a necessary_o and_o perfect_o and_o that_o he_o do_v all_o well_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n a_o high_a goodness_n than_o its_o own_o felicity_n even_o the_o image_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n in_o which_o his_o holiness_n and_o justice_n have_v their_o place_n and_o that_o this_o goodness_n of_o the_o universe_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o god_n in_o it_o and_o the_o suitableness_n of_o all_o to_o his_o will_n and_o wisdom_n include_v all_o thing_n except_o sin_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o your_o objection_n and_o that_o punishment_n of_o sinner_n though_o it_o be_v malum_fw-la physicum_fw-la to_o they_o be_v a_o moral_a good_a and_o glorifi_v god_n justice_n and_o holiness_n and_o even_o the_o permission_n of_o sin_n itself_o be_v good_a though_o the_o sin_n be_v bad_a and_o yet_o that_o god_n will_v also_o glorify_v that_o part_n of_o his_o goodness_n which_o consist_v in_o benignity_n for_o he_o have_v a_o amor_fw-la beneficentiae_fw-la of_o which_o the_o creature_n only_o be_v the_o object_n but_o of_o his_o amor_fw-la complacentiae_fw-la he_o himself_z be_v the_o chief_a object_n and_o the_o creature_n but_o the_o secondary_a so_o far_o as_o it_o participate_v of_o goodness_n and_o complacency_n be_v the_o essential_a act_n of_o love_n think_v but_o what_o a_o wonderful_a fabric_n he_o have_v make_v of_o all_o the_o orb_n compose_v into_o one_o world_n and_o can_v you_o possible_o have_v narrow_a thought_n of_o his_o goodness_n he_o have_v place_v more_o physical_a goodness_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o one_o silly_a bird_n or_o fly_v or_o worm_n than_o humane_a wit_n be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o much_o more_o in_o plant_n in_o beast_n in_o man_n in_o sea_n and_o land_n in_o the_o sun_n and_o fix_v star_n and_o planet_n our_o understanding_n be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o thousand_o thousand_o thousand_o part_n of_o the_o physical_a goodness_n which_o he_o have_v put_v into_o his_o creature_n there_o may_v be_v more_o of_o the_o wonderful_a skill_n and_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n lay_v out_o on_o one_o of_o those_o star_n that_o seem_v small_a to_o our_o sight_n than_o million_o of_o humane_a intellect_n if_o unite_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v and_o who_o know_v the_o number_n any_o more_o than_o the_o magnitude_n and_o excellency_n of_o those_o star_n what_o man_n can_v once_o look_v up_o towards_o the_o firmament_n in_o a_o star_n light_a night_n intend_v or_o once_o read_v a_o treatise_n of_o astronomy_n and_o then_o compare_v it_o with_o his_o geography_n and_o compare_v those_o far_o more_o excellent_a orb_n with_o this_o narrow_a and_o dark_a world_n we_o live_v in_o and_o not_o be_v wrap_v up_o into_o the_o astonish_a admiration_n of_o the_o power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o creator_n when_o the_o anatomise_v of_o the_o body_n of_o one_o man_n or_o beast_n may_v wrap_v up_o any_o considerate_a man_n into_o galen_n admiration_n and_o praise_n of_o the_o maker_n and_o how_o many_o myriade_n of_o such_o body_n have_v god_n create_v and_o how_o much_o more_o excellent_a be_v the_o form_n or_o soul_n than_o any_o of_o those_o body_n and_o how_o little_a know_v we_o how_o incomparable_o more_o excellent_a the_o nature_n of_o angel_n may_v be_v than_o we_o and_o what_o glorious_a being_n may_v inhabit_v the_o more_o glorious_a orb_n and_o yet_o can_v you_o think_v mean_o of_o the_o creator_n goodness_n o_o but_o you_o say_v that_o all_o these_o low_a creature_n have_v still_o the_o forementioned_a sorrow_n and_o imperfection_n i_o answer_v you_o 1._o they_o be_v not_o make_v god_n but_o creature_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v perfect_a 2._o it_o be_v the_o corrupt_a and_o blind_a sensual_a mind_n which_o cry_v out_o for_o want_n of_o sensible_a pleasure_n and_o can_v see_v no_o goodness_n in_o any_o thing_n but_o this_o but_o true_a reason_n tell_v any_o man_n that_o have_v it_o that_o our_o sensible_a pleasure_n be_v a_o thing_n too_o low_o to_o be_v the_o high_a excellency_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o to_o be_v the_o ultimate_a end_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n even_o the_o inanimate_a part_n as_o well_o as_o the_o animate_v show_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o infinite_a creator_n be_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o world_n what_o if_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n and_o earth_n and_o sea_n the_o fire_n and_o air_n have_v no_o feel_n have_v they_o therefore_o no_o goodness_n but_o what_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o the_o sensible_a delight_n of_o low_a thing_n have_v a_o worm_n more_o goodness_n than_o the_o sun_n if_o it_o have_v more_o feeling_n these_o be_v the_o madness_n of_o sensual_a man_n may_v not_o a_o excellent_a limner_n watchmaker_n or_o other_o artificer_n make_v a_o picture_n a_o watch_n or_o musical_a instrument_n mere_o for_o his_o own_o delight_n and_o may_v he_o not_o delight_v in_o the_o excellency_n of_o it_o though_o you_o imagine_v he_o to_o have_v no_o need_n of_o it_o or_o of_o the_o delight_n and_o what_o be_v the_o excellency_n of_o such_o a_o picture_n but_o to_o be_v the_o full_a demonstration_n of_o the_o author_n skill_n in_o the_o most_o full_a representation_n of_o the_o thing_n resemble_v will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o have_v do_v no_o good_a because_o he_o make_v not_o his_o picture_n sensible_a and_o make_v not_o its_o pleasure_n his_o ultimate_a end_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o particular_n we_o call_v bad_a be_v good_a as_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o universal_a frame_n as_o many_o darken_n and_o shadowing_n in_o a_o picture_n may_v conduce_v to_o make_v it_o beautiful_a the_o eye_n be_v a_o more_o excellent_a part_n of_o the_o body_n than_o a_o finger_n or_o a_o tooth_n and_o yet_o it_o make_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o whole_a that_o there_o be_v finger_n and_o tooth_n as_o well_o as_o eye_n so_o it_o do_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o world_n that_o there_o be_v man_n and_o beast_n and_o plant_n as_o well_o as_o angel_n and_o poor_a man_n as_o well_o as_o rich_a and_o sick_a man_n as_o well_o as_o sound_v and_o pain_n as_o well_o as_o pleasure_n our_o narrow_a sight_n that_o look_v but_o on_o a_o spot_n or_o parcel_n of_o god_n work_n at_o once_o do_v judge_n according_a to_o the_o particular_a interest_n of_o that_o parcel_n and_o so_o we_o will_v have_v no_o variety_n in_o the_o world_n but_o every_o thing_n of_o that_o species_n which_o we_o think_v best_a but_o god_n see_v all_o his_o work_n at_o once_o uno_fw-la intuitu_fw-la and_o therefore_o see_v what_o be_v best_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o universe_n and_o see_v what_o variety_n be_v beautiful_a and_o
yet_o be_v as_o obligatory_a and_o as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o than_o a_o law_n which_o make_v it_o more_o than_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o subject_a to_o answer_v love_n and_o goodness_n with_o gratitude_n and_o love_n so_o that_o if_o per_fw-la impossibile_fw-it you_fw-mi suppose_v that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o obligation_n to_o god_n but_o this_o of_o love_n and_o goodness_n or_o abstract_a this_o from_o the_o rest_n i_o question_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o most_o eminent_o moral_a and_o whether_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o do_v not_o moral_o fit_v we_o for_o the_o high_a benefit_n and_o felicity_n and_o the_o violation_n of_o it_o merit_v not_o moral_o the_o rejection_n of_o our_o great_a benefactor_n and_o the_o withdraw_n of_o all_o his_o favour_n to_o our_o undo_n but_o this_o controversy_n my_o cause_n be_v not_o much_o concern_v in_o as_o i_o have_v say_v because_o the_o same_o god_n be_v our_o sovereign_n also_o §_o 2._o the_o duty_n which_o we_o special_o owe_v to_o god_n in_o this_o high_a relation_n be_v love_n which_o as_o such_o be_v above_o obedience_n as_o such_o the_o difference_n of_o understanding_n and_o will_n require_v government_n and_o obedience_n that_o the_o understanding_n and_o will_n of_o the_o superior_a may_v be_v a_o rule_n to_o the_o subject_n but_o love_n be_v a_o concord_n of_o will_n and_o so_o far_o as_o love_n have_v cause_v a_o concord_n there_o be_v no_o use_n for_o government_n by_o law_n and_o penalty_n cic._n and_o therefore_o the_o law_n be_v not_o make_v for_o a_o righteous_a man_n as_o such_o that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o love_n have_v unite_v his_o soul_n to_o virtue_n and_o separate_v it_o from_o sin_n he_o need_v not_o to_o be_v constrain_v or_o restrain_v by_o any_o penal_a law_n no_o more_o than_o man_n need_v a_o law_n to_o command_v they_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o preserve_v their_o life_n and_o forbear_v self-destruction_n but_o so_o far_o as_o any_o man_n be_v unrighteous_a or_o ungodly_a that_o be_v have_v a_o will_n to_o sin_n or_o cross_v or_o averse_a to_o goodness_n so_o far_o he_o need_v a_o penal_a law_n which_o therefore_o all_o need_n while_o they_o remain_v imperfect_a nature_n have_v make_v love_n and_o goodness_n like_o the_o iron_n and_o the_o loadstone_n the_o understanding_n do_v not_o so_o ponderous_o incline_v to_o truth_n as_o the_o will_n do_v natural_o to_o good_n for_o this_o be_v the_o perfect_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o whole_a inclination_n of_o nature_n go_v after_o it_o therefore_o love_n be_v the_o high_a duty_n or_o noble_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n §_o 3._o the_o essential_a act_n of_o this_o love_n be_v complacency_n or_o the_o pleasedness_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o a_o suitable_a good_a but_o it_o have_v divers_a effect_n concomitant_n and_o accident_n from_o whence_o it_o borrow_v divers_a name_n §_o 4._o the_o love_n of_o benevolence_n as_o it_o work_v towards_o the_o felicity_n of_o another_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o man_n who_o need_v he_o but_o not_o of_o man_n to_o god_n who_o be_v above_o our_o benefit_n and_o need_v nothing_o §_o 5._o our_o love_n to_o god_n respect_v he_o either_o 1._o as_o our_o efficient_a 2._o dirigent_a 3._o or_o final_a good_a which_o have_v according_o concomitant_a duty_n §_o 6._o i._n our_o love_n to_o god_n as_o our_o chief_a good_a efficient_o contain_v in_o it_o 1._o a_o willing_a receive_v love_n 2._o a_o thankful_a love_n 3._o a_o return_v devote_v serve_v love_n which_o among_o man_n amount_v to_o retribution_n §_o 7._o 1._o a_o absolute_a dependent_a beneficiary_a aught_o with_o full_a dependence_n on_o his_o totall_n benefactor_n to_o receive_v all_o his_o benefit_n with_o love_n and_o willingness_n 28._o a_o undervalue_v of_o benefit_n and_o demur_v or_o reject_v they_o be_v a_o great_a abuse_n and_o injury_n to_o a_o benefactor_n thus_o do_v the_o ungodly_a world_n against_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n they_o know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o despise_v they_o and_o will_v not_o be_v entreat_v to_o accept_v they_o but_o take_v they_o for_o intolerable_a injury_n or_o trouble_n as_o a_o sick_a stomach_n do_v its_o physic_n and_o food_n ib._n because_o they_o be_v against_o their_o fleshly_a appetite_n a_o open_a heart_n to_o receive_v god_n mercy_n with_o high_a esteem_n beseem_v such_o beneficiaries_n as_o we_o §_o 8._o 2._o thankfulness_n be_v that_o operation_n of_o love_n which_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n have_v convince_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v a_o duty_n and_o scarce_o a_o man_n be_v to_o be_v find_v so_o brutish_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o and_o our_o love_n to_o god_n shall_v be_v more_o thankful_a than_o to_o all_o the_o world_n because_o our_o receiving_n from_o he_o be_v much_o great_a than_o from_o all_o §_o 9_o 3._o though_o we_o can_v requite_v god_n true_a gratitude_n will_v devote_v the_o whole_a man_n to_o his_o service_n will_n and_o honour_n and_o bring_v back_o his_o mercy_n to_o he_o for_o his_o use_n so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v able_a §_o 10._o ii_o our_o love_n to_o our_o dirigent_a benefactor_n be_v 1._o a_o fiducial_a love_n 2._o a_o love_n well-pleased_n in_o his_o conduct_n 3._o a_o follow_v love_n though_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n chief_o as_o our_o sapiential_a governor_n to_o be_v the_o dirigent_a cause_n of_o our_o life_n yet_o he_o do_v it_o also_o as_o our_o benefactor_n by_o a_o commixture_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o relation_n §_o 11._o 1._o so_o infinite_a and_o sure_a a_o friend_n be_v absolute_o to_o be_v trist_v with_o a_o general_n confidence_n in_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o a_o particular_a confidence_n in_o the_o promise_n or_o signification_n of_o his_o goodwill_n infinite_a good_n can_v be_v willing_a to_o deceive_v or_o disappoint_v we_o and_o if_o we_o absolute_o trust_v he_o it_o will_v abundant_o conduce_v to_o our_o holiness_n and_o peace_n §_o 12._o 2._o we_o must_v also_o love_v his_o conduct_n his_o precept_n and_o his_o holy_a example_n and_o the_o very_a way_n itself_o in_o which_o he_o lead_v we_o all_o that_o be_v from_o he_o be_v good_a and_o must_v be_v love_v both_o for_o itself_o and_o for_o he_o that_o it_o come_v from_o and_o for_o that_o which_o it_o lead_v to_o all_o his_o instruction_n help_n reproof_n and_o all_o his_o conduct_a mean_n shall_v be_v amiable_a to_o we_o §_o 13._o 3._o love_n must_v make_v we_o cheerful_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o the_o way_n which_o by_o precept_n or_o example_n he_o be_v please_v to_o lead_v we_o and_o so_o to_o follow_v he_o as_o to_o love_v the_o token_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o footstep_n of_o his_o will_n and_o all_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o approbation_n and_o with_o a_o heroic_a fortitude_n of_o love_n to_o rejoice_v in_o suffering_n and_o venture_v upon_o danger_n and_o conquer_v difficulty_n for_o his_o sake_n §_o 14._o iii_o our_o love_n to_o god_n as_o our_o final_a good_a be_v 1._o cicer._n a_o desire_v love_n 2._o a_o seek_v love_n and_o 3._o a_o full_a complacential_a delight_a love_n which_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o we_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o accidental_o it_o be_v sometime_o a_o mourn_a love_n §_o 15._o 1._o man_n be_v but_o in_o via_n under_o the_o efficiency_n and_o conduct_n of_o love_n to_o final_a love_n and_o goodness_n have_v his_o end_n to_o intend_v and_o his_o mean_n to_o use_v and_o therefore_o love_n must_v needs_o work_v by_o desire_n 14._o §_o 16._o so_o far_o as_o a_o man_n be_v short_a of_o the_o thing_n desire_v love_n will_v have_v some_o sense_n of_o want_n and_o so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v cross_v in_o our_o seeking_n and_o frustrate_v in_o any_o of_o our_o hope_n it_o will_v be_v sorrowful_a §_o 17._o 2._o man_n be_v appoint_v to_o a_o course_n and_o life_n of_o mean_n to_o his_o last_o end_n must_v needs_o be_v employ_v in_o those_o mean_n for_o the_o love_n of_o that_o end_n and_o so_o the_o main_a work_n of_o this_o life_n be_v that_o of_o a_o desire_v seek_v love_n §_o 18._o 3._o the_o complacential_a delight_a love_n have_v three_o degree_n the_o first_o in_o belief_n and_o hope_n the_o second_o in_o foretaste_n and_o the_o three_o in_o full_a inflame_a exercise_n §_o 19_o 1._o the_o well-grounded_n hope_v of_o the_o foresee_a vision_n and_o fruition_n of_o the_o infinite_a good_a which_o be_v our_o end_n must_v needs_o possess_v the_o considerate_a mind_n with_o a_o delight_n which_o be_v somewhat_o answerable_a to_o that_o hope_n §_o 20._o 2._o when_o the_o soul_n do_v not_o only_a hope_n for_o its_o future_a end_n but_o also_o at_o present_a close_a with_o god_n subratione_fw-la finis_fw-la in_o the_o exercise_n
the_o less_o do_v forfeit_v his_o mercy_n by_o their_o inhuman_a and_o irrational_a ingratitude_n and_o abuse_n which_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o proud_a covetous_a voluptuous_a person_n the_o ambitious_a fornicator_n glutton_n drunkard_n and_o lover_n of_o sport_n recreation_n idleness_n or_o any_o pleasure_n as_o it_o turn_v they_o from_o god_n §_o 34._o above_o all_o other_o sin_n scipi_fw-la we_o shall_v most_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o inordinate_a love_n of_o any_o creature_n for_o itself_o or_o for_o our_o carnal_a self_n alone_o because_o it_o be_v most_o contrary_a to_o our_o love_n to_o god_n which_o be_v our_o high_a work_n and_o duty_n §_o 35._o those_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v most_o to_o be_v value_v desire_a and_o seek_v which_o show_v we_o most_o of_o god_n himself_o or_o most_o help_v up_o our_o love_n to_o he_o §_o 36._o we_o must_v love_v both_o our_o natural_a self_n and_o neighbour_n the_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o the_o good_a with_o a_o love_n of_o benevolence_n desire_v our_o own_o good_a and_o they_o but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o must_v hate_v ourselves_o and_o they_o so_o far_o as_o wicked_a with_o the_o hatred_n of_o displicency_n and_o with_o the_o love_n of_o complacency_n must_v only_o so_o far_o love_v ourselves_o or_o other_o as_o the_o image_n of_o divine_a goodness_n be_v in_o we_o or_o they_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o mere_a natural_a passion_n of_o the_o parent_n to_o the_o child_n which_o be_v common_a to_o man_n and_o beast_n nor_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o love_n in_o outward_a act_n for_o those_o may_v be_v direct_v by_o god_n command_n to_o go_v more_o to_o one_o as_o a_o wicked_a child_n that_o have_v less_o true_a amiableness_n in_o he_o but_o all_o holy_a love_n must_v be_v suit_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o true_a object_n laert._n §_o 37._o the_o love_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v with_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o our_o might_n not_o limit_v suppress_v or_o neglect_v but_o be_v the_o most_o serious_a predominant_a action_n of_o our_o soul_n how_o easy_a a_o matter_n be_v it_o to_o prove_v holiness_n to_o be_v natural_o man_v great_a duty_n when_o love_n to_o god_n which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v so_o easy_o prove_v to_o be_v so_o all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o corrupt_v but_o be_v reason_n indeed_o must_v confess_v without_o any_o tergiversation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o most_o great_a and_o unquestionable_a duty_n of_o man_n to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o yea_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o might_n and_o he_o that_o do_v so_o shall_v never_o be_v number_v by_o he_o with_o the_o ungodly_a for_o those_o be_v inconsistent_a §_o 38._o the_o exercise_n of_o love_n to_o god_n in_o complacency_n desire_n seek_v etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v the_o chief_a employment_n of_o our_o thought_n for_o the_o thought_n be_v the_o exercise_n of_o a_o command_v faculty_n which_o must_v be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o our_o will_n and_o the_o ultimate_a end_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o love_n to_o it_o shall_v daily_o govern_v they_o we_o and_o what_o a_o man_n love_v most_o usual_o he_o will_v think_v of_o with_o his_o most_o practical_a powerful_a thought_n if_o not_o with_o the_o most_o frequent_a §_o 39_o the_o love_n of_o god_n shall_v employ_v our_o tongue_n in_o the_o proclaim_n of_o his_o praise_n and_o benefit_n and_o express_v our_o own_o admiration_n and_o affection_n to_o kindle_v the_o like_a in_o the_o soul_n of_o other_o for_o the_o same_o god_n who_o be_v so_o amiable_a have_v give_v we_o our_o speech_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o benefit_n and_o give_v it_o we_o purposely_o to_o declare_v his_o praise_n reason_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o have_v no_o high_o worthy_a or_o better_a employment_n for_o our_o tongue_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v use_v they_o to_o the_o best_a the_o tongue_n of_o man_n be_v adorn_v with_o language_n for_o charitable_a and_o pious_a communication_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fit_a to_o affect_v the_o heart_n of_o other_o and_o to_o kindle_v in_o they_o that_o sacred_a fire_n which_o be_v kindle_v in_o themselves_o therefore_o that_o tongue_n which_o be_v silent_a to_o its_o maker_n praise_n and_o declare_v not_o the_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v not_o divulge_v the_o notice_n of_o his_o benefit_n 52._o condemn_v itself_o and_o the_o heart_n that_o shall_v employ_v it_o as_o neglect_v the_o great_a duty_n it_o be_v make_v for_o §_o 40._o the_o life_n of_o god_n beneficiaries_n shall_v be_v employ_v to_o his_o praise_n and_o pleasure_n and_o shall_v be_v the_o stream_a effect_n of_o inward_a love_n and_o all_o his_o mercy_n shall_v be_v improve_v to_o his_o service_n from_o a_o thankful_a heart_n all_o this_o have_v the_o full_a testimony_n of_o reason_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o proportion_n and_o common_a right_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o live_v but_o to_o he_o from_o who_o and_o by_o who_o we_o live_v what_o but_o our_o ultimate_a end_n shall_v be_v principal_o intend_v and_o seek_v through_o our_o whole_a life_n a_o creature_n that_o have_v all_o from_o god_n shall_v in_o love_n and_o gratitude_n bring_v back_o all_o to_o he_o and_o thus_o we_o make_v it_o more_o our_o own_o §_o 41._o this_o life_n of_o love_n shall_v be_v the_o chief_a delight_n and_o pleasure_n of_o our_o soul_n hor._n which_o all_o other_o pleasure_n shall_v subserve_v and_o all_o be_v abhor_v which_o contradict_v it_o nothing_o be_v easy_o confess_v by_o all_o than_o the_o desirableness_n of_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n and_o the_o most_o excellent_a object_n which_o most_o be_v most_o belove_v must_v be_v our_o chief_a delight_n for_o love_n itself_o be_v a_o delight_a act_n unless_o some_o stop_n do_v turn_v it_o aside_o into_o fear_n and_o sorrow_n nothing_o can_v itself_o be_v so_o delectable_a as_o god_n the_o chief_a good_a and_o no_o employment_n so_o delectable_a as_o love_v he_o this_o therefore_o shall_v be_v our_o work_n and_o our_o recreation_n our_o labour_n and_o our_o pleasure_n our_o food_n and_o feast_n other_o delight_n be_v lawful_a and_o good_a so_o far_o as_o they_o further_o these_o delight_n of_o holy_a love_n by_o carry_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o the_o original_n and_o end_n of_o all_o our_o mercy_n and_o delight_n but_o nothing_o be_v so_o injurious_a to_o god_n and_o we_o as_o that_o which_o corrupt_v our_o mind_n with_o sensuality_n and_o become_v our_o pleasure_n instead_o of_o god_n §_o 42._o the_o sense_n of_o the_o present_a imperfection_n of_o our_o love_n shall_v make_v we_o long_o to_o know_v god_n more_o and_o to_o love_v he_o and_o delight_n in_o he_o and_o praise_v he_o in_o perfection_n to_o the_o utmost_a extent_n of_o our_o capacity_n if_o it_o be_v so_o good_a to_o love_n god_n then_o must_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o it_o be_v best_a and_o reason_n teach_v we_o best_o when_o we_o feel_v how_o weak_a our_o knowledge_n and_o love_n be_v to_o long_o for_o more_o yea_o for_o perfection_n §_o 43._o thus_o have_v reason_n show_v we_o the_o end_n and_o high_a felicity_n of_o man_n in_o his_o high_a duty_n to_o know_v god_n to_o love_v he_o and_o delight_n in_o he_o in_o the_o full_a perfection_n and_o to_o be_v love_v by_o he_o and_o be_v full_o please_v to_o he_o as_o herein_o bear_v his_o image_n be_v the_o felicity_n and_o the_o ultimate_a end_n of_o man_n love_n be_v man_n final_a act_n excite_v by_o the_o full_a knowledge_n and_o god_n so_o behold_v and_o enjoy_v in_o his_o love_n to_o we_o be_v the_o final_a object_n and_o here_o the_o soul_n must_v seek_v its_o rest_n obj._n but_o quae_fw-la supra_fw-la nos_fw-la nihil_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la god_n indeed_o be_v near_o to_o angel_n but_o he_o have_v make_v they_o our_o benefactor_n and_o they_o have_v commit_v it_o to_o inferior_a cause_n there_o must_v be_v suitableness_n as_o well_o as_o excellency_n to_o win_v love_n 13._o we_o find_v no_o suitableness_n between_o our_o heart_n and_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v not_o that_o we_o be_v make_v for_o any_o such_o employment_n and_o we_o see_v that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n be_v as_o averse_a to_o this_o life_n of_o holiness_n as_o ourselves_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v think_v but_o that_o it_o be_v quite_o above_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o work_n and_o end_n which_o he_o be_v make_v for_o answ_n 1._o whether_o god_n have_v make_v angel_n or_o ruler_n or_o benefactor_n or_o what_o love_n or_o honour_n we_o owe_v they_o as_o his_o instrument_n be_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a business_n for_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o he_o thus_o use_v they_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v nevertheless_o
himself_o our_o benefactor_n nor_o nevertheless_o near_o we_o what_o nearness_n to_o we_o they_o have_v we_o be_v much_o uncertain_a but_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v our_o total_a benefactor_n and_o always_o with_o we_o as_o near_o to_o we_o as_o we_o be_v to_o ourselves_o be_v past_o all_o question_n and_o prove_v before_o 2._o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o object_n so_o suitable_a for_o our_o love_n as_o god_n he_o have_v all_o goodness_n in_o he_o and_o all_o in_o the_o creature_n be_v derive_v from_o he_o and_o depend_v on_o he_o and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o all_o that_o ever_o we_o ourselves_o receive_v and_o must_v give_v we_o all_o that_o ever_o we_o shall_v receive_v hereafter_o he_o be_v all-sufficient_a for_o the_o supply_n of_o all_o our_o want_n and_o grant_v all_o our_o just_a desire_n and_o make_v we_o perfect_a all_o that_o he_o do_v for_o we_o he_o do_v in_o love_n as_o a_o intellectual_a free_a agent_n and_o he_o be_v still_o present_a with_o we_o uphold_v we_o and_o give_v we_o the_o very_a love_n which_o he_o demand_v and_o he_o create_v we_o for_o himself_o to_o be_v his_o own_o and_o give_v we_o these_o faculty_n to_o know_v and_o love_v he_o and_o can_v any_o then_o be_v a_o more_o suitable_a object_n of_o our_o love_n 3._o do_v you_o not_o find_v that_o your_o understanding_n have_v a_o suitableness_n or_o inclination_n to_o truth_n and_o knowledge_n and_o will_v you_o not_o know_v the_o best_a and_o great_a thing_n and_o know_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o wonderful_a effect_n which_o you_o see_v and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o know_v god_n and_o do_v you_o not_o find_v that_o your_o will_n have_v a_o suitableness_n to_o good_a as_o such_o in_o the_o general_a and_o to_o your_o own_o felicity_n and_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v unnatural_a to_o any_o man_n to_o love_v the_o best_a which_o be_v best_a and_o especial_o which_o be_v best_a for_o he_o and_o to_o love_v he_o best_a who_o be_v his_o great_a benefactor_n and_o most_o worthy_a of_o his_o love_n in_o all_o respect_n and_o can_v you_o doubt_v whether_o god_n be_v most_o worthy_a of_o your_o love_n all_o this_o be_v plain_a and_o sure_a and_o will_v man_n averseness_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n then_o disprove_v it_o it_o be_v natural_a for_o man_n to_o desire_v knowledge_n as_o that_o which_o perfect_v his_o understanding_n and_o yet_o boy_n be_v averse_a to_o learn_v their_o book_n because_o they_o be_v slothful_a and_o be_v divert_v by_o the_o love_n of_o play_n what_o if_o your_o servant_n be_v averse_a and_o slothful_a to_o your_o service_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o duty_n 289._o or_o that_o you_o hire_v they_o not_o for_o it_o what_o if_o your_o wife_n and_o child_n be_v averse_a to_o love_v you_o be_v it_o therefore_o none_o of_o their_o duty_n so_o to_o do_v rebel_n be_v averse_a to_o obey_v their_o governor_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o obey_v they_o if_o your_o child_n or_o any_o one_o that_o be_v most_o beholden_a to_o you_o shall_v be_v averse_a to_o love_v and_o gratitude_n to_o you_o as_o thousand_o be_v to_o their_o parent_n and_o benefactor_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o nature_n oblige_v they_o not_o to_o it_o 4._o what_o can_v you_o think_v be_v suitable_a to_o your_o love_n if_o god_n be_v not_o be_v it_o lust_n or_o play_v or_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o ease_v a_o swine_n have_v a_o nature_n as_o suitable_a to_o these_o as_o you_o be_v it_o only_o to_o deal_v ingenuous_o and_o honourable_o in_o provide_v for_o the_o flesh_n 202._o and_o maintain_v the_o fuel_n of_o these_o sensuality_n by_o building_n trading_n manufacture_n ornament_n and_o art_n all_o this_o be_v but_o to_o have_v a_o reason_n to_o serve_v your_o sense_n and_o so_o the_o swinish_a part_n still_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a for_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o roll_a object_n with_o you_o do_v show_v which_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o regnant_a faculty_n if_o sensual_a object_n be_v the_o chief_a than_o sense_n be_v the_o chief_a faculty_n with_o you_o and_o if_o you_o have_v the_o great_a wit_n in_o the_o world_n and_o use_v it_o only_o to_o serve_v your_o gut_n and_o throat_n and_o lust_n in_o a_o more_o effectual_a and_o ingenious_a way_n than_o any_o other_o man_n can_v do_v this_o be_v but_o to_o be_v a_o ingenuous_a beast_n or_o to_o have_v a_o intellect_n bind_v in_o service_n to_o your_o belly_n and_o can_v you_o think_v that_o thing_n so_o little_a satisfy_n and_o so_o quick_o perish_v be_v more_o suitable_a object_n for_o your_o love_n than_o god_n 5._o what_o say_v you_o to_o all_o they_o that_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v and_o that_o take_v the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o their_o work_n and_o happiness_n they_o find_v a_o suitableness_n in_o god_n to_o their_o high_a esteem_n and_o love_n and_o be_v they_o not_o as_o fit_v judge_n for_o the_o affirmative_a as_o you_o for_o the_o negative_a obj._n they_o do_v but_o force_v themselves_o to_o some_o act_n of_o fancy_n answ_n you_o see_v that_o they_o be_v such_o act_n as_o be_v the_o more_o serious_a and_o prevalent_a in_o their_o life_n and_o can_v make_v they_o lay_v by_o other_o pleasure_n and_o spend_v their_o day_n in_o seek_v god_n and_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n in_o the_o exercise_n and_o hope_n of_o love_n and_o that_o it_o be_v you_o that_o follow_v fancy_n and_o they_o that_o follow_v solid_a reason_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o reason_n of_o your_o several_a way_n that_o world_n which_o you_o set_v above_o god_n be_v at_o last_o call_v vanity_n by_o all_o that_o try_v it_o reason_n will_v not_o final_o justify_v your_o choice_n but_o i_o have_v here_o show_v you_o undeniable_a reason_n for_o their_o choice_n and_o love_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v they_o that_o know_v what_o they_o do_v and_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o you_o obliterate_v and_o contradict_v obj._n but_o we_o see_v the_o creature_n but_o god_n we_o see_v not_o and_o we_o find_v it_o not_o natural_a to_o we_o to_o love_v that_o which_o we_o do_v not_o see_v answ_n be_v not_o reason_n a_o noble_a faculty_n than_o sight_n if_o it_o be_v aristot_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o more_o rule_v you_o and_o dispose_v of_o you_o shall_v no_o subject_n honour_n and_o obey_v their_o king_n but_o those_o that_o see_v he_o you_o can_v love_v your_o money_n and_o land_n and_o friend_n when_o they_o be_v out_o of_o sight_n obj._n but_o these_o be_v thing_n visible_a in_o their_o nature_n they_o answ_n they_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o vile_a and_o less_o amiable_a your_o own_o soul_n be_v invisible_a will_v you_o not_o therefore_o love_v they_o you_o never_o see_v the_o life_n or_o form_n of_o any_o plant_n or_o live_a wight_n you_o see_v the_o beauty_n of_o your_o rose_n and_o many_o other_o flower_n but_o you_o see_v not_o the_o life_n and_o form_n within_o which_o cause_v all_o that_o beauty_n and_o variety_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o effect_n can_v you_o doubt_v whether_o all_o thing_n which_o appear_v here_o to_o your_o sight_n have_v a_o invisible_a cause_n and_o maker_n or_o can_v you_o think_v he_o less_o amiable_a because_o he_o be_v invisible_a that_o be_v more_o excellent_a 6._o in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o all_o this_o averseness_n of_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v their_o sin_n and_o pravity_n and_o the_o unsuitableness_n of_o their_o nature_n be_v because_o they_o be_v vitiate_a with_o sensuality_n and_o deceive_v by_o sensible_a thing_n a_o disease_n to_o be_v cure_v and_o not_o defend_v their_o sin_n will_v not_o prove_v the_o contrary_n no_o duty_n 7._o and_o yet_o while_o we_o be_v in_o flesh_n though_o god_n be_v not_o visible_a to_o we_o his_o work_n be_v and_o it_o be_v in_o they_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v reveal_v and_o expose_v himself_o to_o our_o love_n it_o be_v in_o this_o visible_a glass_n that_o we_o must_v see_v his_o image_n and_o in_o that_o image_n must_v love_v he_o and_o if_o we_o will_v love_v any_o goodness_n we_o must_v love_v he_o for_o all_o be_v he_o and_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v love_v by_o we_o cal._n chap._n xiii_o experiment_n of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o all_o this_o duty_n and_o what_o it_o will_v cost_v a_o man_n that_o will_v live_v this_o holy_a life_n hitherto_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n of_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n the_o creator_n and_o consequent_o the_o owner_n the_o ruler_n and_o the_o father_n or_o chief_a good_a of_o man_n and_o that_o man_n as_o his_o creature_n be_v absolute_o his_o own_o and_o
what_o he_o exercise_v by_o man_n though_o extraordinary_o he_o sometime_o otherwise_o interpose_v and_o how_o easy_a and_o ordinary_a it_o be_v for_o subtle_a man_n to_o do_v much_o wickedness_n and_o never_o be_v discover_v needs_o no_o proof_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v in_o some_o measure_n of_o those_o secret_a duty_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n which_o have_v neither_o reward_n nor_o notice_n in_o this_o life_n and_o if_o observe_v be_v usual_o turn_v into_o matter_n of_o reproach_n the_o minor_a need_v no_o more_o proof_n when_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o that_o god_n be_v our_o governor_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o secret_a act_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n be_v as_o much_o under_o his_o government_n as_o the_o open_a and_o therefore_o shall_v have_v equal_a retribution_n §_o 3._o iii_o if_o there_o be_v no_o life_n of_o retribution_n after_o this_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o great_a one_o and_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o other_o that_o by_o strength_n can_v make_v their_o part_n good_a will_v be_v under_o no_o sufficient_a justice_n but_o the_o sin_n even_o of_o the_o great_a and_o strong_a be_v under_o sufficient_a justice_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o life_n of_o retribution_n after_o this_o the_o major_n be_v clear_a by_o experience_n the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o sovereign_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v rare_o under_o sufficient_a justice_n in_o this_o life_n if_o there_o be_v no_o punishment_n hereafter_o what_o justice_n will_v be_v do_v upon_o a_o tamerlane_n a_o bajazet_n a_o mahume_v a_o dionysius_n a_o alexander_n a_o caesar_n a_o marius_n a_o sylla_n a_o sertorius_n and_o many_o hundred_o such_o for_o all_o the_o innocent_a blood_n which_o they_o have_v shed_v for_o their_o pride_n and_o self-exalting_a what_o justice_n will_v be_v do_v on_o king_n and_o emperor_n and_o state_n that_o have_v none_o above_o they_o for_o all_o their_o lust_n and_o filthiness_n their_o intemperance_n and_o sensuality_n legib_n their_o oppression_n and_o cruelty_n i_o know_v that_o god_n do_v sometime_o punish_v they_o by_o rebel_n or_o by_o other_o prince_n or_o by_o sickness_n in_o this_o life_n but_o that_o be_v no_o ordinary_a course_n of_o justice_n and_o therefore_o not_o sufficient_a to_o its_o end_n ordinary_o all_o thing_n here_o come_v alike_o to_o all_o and_o what_o justice_n will_v be_v do_v upon_o any_o rebel_n or_o robber_n that_o be_v but_o strong_a enough_o to_o bear_v it_o out_o or_o upon_o any_o that_o raise_v unrighteous_a war_n and_o burn_v and_o murder_n and_o destroy_v country_n and_o city_n and_o be_v worse_o than_o plague_n to_o all_o place_n where_o they_o come_v and_o worse_o than_o mad_a dog_n and_o bear_v to_o other_o if_o they_o do_v but_o conquer_v instead_o of_o punishment_n for_o all_o this_o villainy_n they_o go_v away_o here_o with_o wealth_n and_o glory_n the_o minor_a be_v past_a question_n therefore_o certain_o there_o be_v another_o life_n where_o conquer_a reward_v prosper_v domineer_a sin_n shall_v have_v its_o proper_a punishment_n §_o 4._o iv._o if_o god_n rule_v not_o man_n by_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o certain_a good_a and_o evil_a hereafter_o he_o rule_v he_o not_o according_a to_o his_o nature_n but_o god_n do_v rule_v man_n according_a to_o his_o nature_n ergo._fw-la the_o minor_a need_v no_o proof_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v by_o experience_n the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v most_o move_v with_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a after_o death_n otherwise_o death_n itself_o will_v comparative_o seem_v nothing_o to_o we_o no_o other_o creature_n have_v such_o hope_n and_o fear_n if_o you_o ask_v how_o i_o can_v tell_v that_o i_o answer_v as_o i_o can_v tell_v that_o a_o tree_n do_v not_o hear_v and_o a_o stone_n do_v not_o feel_v or_o see_v because_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o such_o a_o sense_n who_o nature_n be_v to_o make_v itself_o manifest_a by_o its_o evidence_n where_o it_o be_v bruit_n show_v a_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o love_n of_o life_n but_o of_o nothing_o further_o of_o which_o there_o be_v evidence_n enough_o to_o quiet_a a_o mind_n that_o seek_v after_o truth_n though_o not_o to_o silence_v a_o prate_a caviller_n this_o will_v be_v further_o improve_v under_o that_o which_o follow_v §_o 5._o v._n if_o the_o world_n can_v be_v govern_v according_a to_o its_o nature_n and_o god_n law_n without_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a after_o death_n than_o the_o object_n of_o such_o hope_n and_o fear_n be_v certain_a truth_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o so_o be_v the_o consequent_a that_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n require_v a_o moral_a government_n and_o not_o only_o a_o physical_a motion_n be_v already_o prove_v physical_a motion_n only_o determine_v the_o agent_n to_o act_v and_o produce_v the_o act_n itself_o quoad_fw-la eventum_fw-la man._n moral_a government_n do_v institute_v for_o the_o subject_a a_o debitum_fw-la agendi_fw-la &_o habendi_fw-la and_o judge_v he_o according_o if_o there_o be_v no_o government_n but_o physical_a motion_n there_o be_v no_o debitum_fw-la in_o the_o world_n neither_o officii_fw-la praemii_fw-la vel_fw-la poenae_fw-la vel_fw-la jus_o possidendi_fw-la vel_fw-la injuria_fw-la no_o right_a or_o wrong_n for_o physical_a motion_n do_v equal_o produce_v the_o act_n in_o perjury_n murder_n treason_n adultery_n as_o in_o good_a deed_n and_o it_o never_o produce_v a_o act_n which_o eventual_o never_o be_v therefore_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o a_o duty_n but_o what_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o physical_a motion_n be_v all_o the_o government_n government_n then_o there_o must_v be_v and_o what_o god_n require_v of_o all_o by_o nature_n i_o have_v show_v before_o now_o that_o there_o be_v a_o moral_a impossibility_n of_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o in_o any_o sincerity_n so_o as_o to_o intimate_v any_o laudable_a government_n of_o the_o world_n i_o shall_v further_o prove_v 1._o if_o according_a to_o the_o present_a temper_n of_o man_n there_o be_v no_o motive_n which_o will_v ever_o prove_v sufficient_a to_o resist_v all_o the_o temptation_n of_o this_o life_n to_o keep_v we_o in_o true_a obedience_n and_o love_n to_o god_n unto_o the_o end_n without_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a after_o death_n then_o can_v the_o world_n be_v govern_v according_a to_o god_n law_n without_o such_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o futurity_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a if_o god_n have_v prescribe_v man_n a_o course_n of_o duty_n in_o his_o law_n maj._n as_o to_o obey_v and_o love_v he_o upon_o term_n of_o fleshly_a suffering_n and_o have_v not_o give_v man_n such_o motive_n as_o may_v rational_o prevail_v for_o the_o performance_n his_o law_n have_v be_v all_o in_o vain_a he_o that_o have_v make_v holiness_n our_o indispensible_a duty_n have_v certain_o leave_v we_o motive_n and_o rational_a help_n to_o perform_v it_o but_o so_o many_o and_o great_a be_v the_o temptation_n of_o this_o life_n and_o so_o strong_a be_v our_o sense_n and_o so_o great_a be_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o obedient_a that_o in_o this_o our_o imperfection_n we_o can_v never_o go_v through_o they_o without_o the_o motive_n which_o be_v fetch_v from_o another_o life_n 1._o it_o will_v weaken_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o best_a as_o to_o their_o duty_n it_o will_v embolden_v they_o to_o sin_n it_o will_v give_v victory_n to_o all_o strong_a temptation_n let_v every_o reader_n but_o consult_v with_o his_o own_o soul_n and_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o virtue_n shall_v be_v choose_v for_o its_o own_o sake_n how_o dear_a soever_o it_o may_v cost_v yet_o let_v he_o without_o lie_v say_v what_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v be_v and_o do_v in_o case_n of_o temptation_n if_o he_o know_v that_o he_o have_v no_o life_n to_o live_v but_o this_o i_o be_o not_o sure_a 4._o but_o i_o will_v free_o confess_v what_o i_o think_v most_o that_o now_o be_v honest_a will_v be_v and_o do_v first_o they_o will_v observe_v how_o little_a difference_n god_n make_v between_o the_o obedient_a and_o disobedient_a in_o his_o providence_n and_o how_o ordinary_o his_o present_a judgement_n be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v fear_v and_o hence_o they_o will_v think_v that_o he_o make_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o it_o what_o they_o either_o be_v or_o do_v and_o so_o their_o very_a love_n of_o virtue_n will_v be_v much_o debilitate_a nay_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o virtuous_a will_v tempt_v they_o to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v no_o very_o desirable_a way_n plan._n and_o though_o still_o they_o will_v have_v something_o within_o they_o which_o will_v tell_v they_o that_o honesty_n and_o temperance_n and_o piety_n be_v good_a yet_o the_o natural_a love_n of_o themselves_o be_v so_o deep_o plant_v in_o they_o 1._o and_o so_o
that_o the_o object_n of_o those_o hope_n and_o fear_n be_v certain_a truth_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o need_v no_o other_o proof_n but_o this_o if_o god_n can_v govern_v the_o world_n without_o a_o course_n of_o deceit_n and_o lie_v than_o the_o object_n of_o these_o necessary_a hope_n and_o fear_n be_v true_a but_o god_n can_v govern_v the_o world_n without_o a_o course_n of_o deceit_n and_o lie_v ergo._fw-la the_o major_n be_v evident_a because_o to_o govern_v by_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o falsehood_n or_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o when_o those_o hope_n and_o fear_n be_v not_o only_o of_o god_n but_o make_v necessary_a to_o government_n be_v to_o govern_v by_o deceit_n and_o lie_v or_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v by_o falsehood_n utter_v but_o falsehood_n permit_v scip._n the_o minor_a be_v certain_a for_o if_o god_n can_v govern_v without_o such_o a_o course_n of_o deceit_n it_o be_v either_o for_o want_v of_o power_n or_o of_o wisdom_n or_o of_o goodness_n that_o be_v holiness_n and_o benignity_n of_o will._n but_o the_o omnipotent_a want_v not_o power_n and_o the_o omniscient_a want_v not_o wisdom_n to_o find_v out_o true_a and_o suitable_a mean_n and_o he_o that_o be_v optimus_fw-la want_v neither_o holiness_n to_o love_v truth_n and_o hate_n falsehood_n nor_o benignity_n to_o love_v his_o creature_n and_o therefore_o need_v no_o such_o mean_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n himself_o do_v govern_v the_o world_n by_o a_o cheat_n even_o by_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o fiction_n will_v sure_o think_v it_o best_o to_o imitate_v his_o god_n and_o to_o govern_v and_o trade_n and_o live_v according_o this_o argument_n be_v à_fw-fr necessitate_v ad_fw-la ordinem_fw-la the_o next_o shall_v be_v only_o from_o god_n actual_a government_n §_o 6._o vi_o if_o god_n do_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la govern_v the_o world_n by_o the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a in_o another_o life_n than_o the_o object_n of_o those_o hope_n and_o fear_n be_v certain_a arbitraretur_fw-la but_o god_n do_v de_fw-mi facto_fw-la so_o govern_v ergo._fw-la the_o major_n be_v prove_v as_o before_o for_o that_o which_o prove_v that_o god_n can_v govern_v without_o falsehood_n prove_v also_o that_o he_o do_v govern_v without_o it_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o impotent_a the_o ignorant_a or_o the_o bad_a to_o use_v such_o mean_n obj._n may_v not_o a_o parent_n or_o physician_n honest_o deceive_v a_o child_n or_o patient_n for_o his_o recovery_n to_o health_n why_o then_o may_v not_o god_n do_v so_o answ_n 1._o they_o do_v it_o through_o insufficiency_n to_o attain_v their_o end_n by_o a_o better_a mean_n but_o the_o omnipotent_a and_o omniscient_a have_v no_o such_o insufficiency_n 2._o they_o may_v not_o lie_v or_o utter_v any_o untruth_n to_o do_v it_o though_o they_o may_v hide_v some_o truth_n by_o word_n which_o he_o be_v apt_a to_o mistake_v but_o if_o the_o world_n be_v govern_v by_o such_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o futurity_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o think_v whence_o they_o shall_v fetch_v the_o object_n but_o from_o some_o divine_a revelation_n in_o nature_n 3._o a_o whole_a course_n of_o government_n of_o all_o the_o rational_a world_n by_o so_o sorry_a a_o instrument_n as_o deceit_n and_o falsehood_n be_v more_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n and_o perfection_n of_o god_n than_o a_o particular_a act_n of_o deceit_n in_o a_o work_n of_o necessity_n and_o charity_n be_v with_o the_o nature_n of_o imperfect_a man_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o last_o objection_n and_o by_o the_o common_a experience_n of_o the_o world_n obj._n how_o little_a do_v the_o hope_n and_o fear_n of_o another_o world_n do_v with_o the_o most_o do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o fleshly_a interest_n rule_v they_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v what_o the_o great_a one_o will_v have_v they_o be_v who_o can_v help_v or_o hurt_v they_o answ_n 1._o i_o have_v prove_v how_o much_o worse_o it_o will_v be_v ●_o that_o restraint_n which_o these_o hope_n and_o fear_n make_v be_v take_v off_o 2._o that_o this_o restraint_n be_v general_a in_o all_o nation_n almost_o of_o the_o earth_n though_o the_o prevalency_n of_o sin_n do_v much_o enfeeble_v it_o 3._o that_o ruler_n themselves_o be_v under_o some_o of_o these_o restraint_n in_o their_o law-making_a and_o judgement_n though_o fleshly_a interest_n much_o prevail_v against_o it_o there_o be_v some_o remnant_n of_o secret_a hope_n or_o fear_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o sinner_n which_o keep_v up_o so_o much_o good_a as_o be_v yet_o leave_v and_o keep_v man_n from_o those_o villainy_n in_o which_o they_o may_v hope_v to_o escape_v all_o suffering_n from_o man_n §_o 7._o vii_o if_o god_n himself_o kindle_v in_o the_o best_a of_o man_n desire_v to_o know_v he_o love_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o perfect_o hereafter_o than_o such_o desire_n shall_v attain_v their_o end_n but_o god_n himself_o do_v kindle_v such_o desire_n in_o the_o best_a of_o man_n ergo_fw-la and_o consequent_o there_o be_v such_o a_o life_n to_o come_v here_o 1._o i_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o best_a man_n have_v such_o desire_n 2._o that_o god_n kindle_v they_o 3._o that_o therefore_o he_o will_v satisfy_v they_o 1._o and_o for_o the_o first_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o good_a man_n be_v my_o witness_n who_o desire_n to_o know_v god_n better_o 15._o to_o love_v he_o and_o please_v he_o more_o and_o to_o enjoy_v his_o love_n be_v as_o the_o very_a pulse_n and_o breath_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o this_o they_o groan_v and_o pray_v and_o seek_v for_o this_o they_o labour_v wait_v and_o suffer_v if_o you_o can_v help_v they_o to_o more_o of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o love_n of_o god_n you_o will_v satisfy_v they_o more_o than_o to_o give_v they_o all_o the_o wealth_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n their_o religious_a life_n their_o labour_n prayer_n contemplation_n and_o suffering_n prove_v all_o this_o and_o show_v for_o what_o they_o long_a and_o live_v obj._n but_o this_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o power_n of_o a_o delude_a fantasy_n which_o seek_v after_o that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v what_o if_o you_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o the_o sun_n will_v it_o prove_v that_o you_o must_v be_v love_v by_o it_o see_v it_o and_o enjoy_v it_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v answ_n 1._o to_o the_o similitude_n either_o the_o sun_n be_v a_o rational_a free_a agent_n or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v either_o the_o chief_a agent_n or_o a_o dependent_a instrument_n if_o it_o be_v the_o first_o as_o it_o be_v not_o i_o shall_v owe_v myself_o total_o to_o it_o come_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o all_o the_o power_n give_v i_o as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o if_o it_o give_v i_o such_o desire_n i_o may_v suppose_v it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a but_o if_o it_o give_v i_o nothing_o but_o as_o a_o instrument_n or_o dependent_a cause_n i_o owe_v it_o nothing_o but_o in_o subserviency_n to_o the_o first_o cause_n but_o in_o such_o subserviency_n if_o god_n have_v command_v i_o to_o love_n and_o honour_v it_o as_o a_o lover_n of_o mankind_n and_o a_o rational_a benefactor_n and_o have_v place_v any_o of_o my_o duty_n or_o felicity_n in_o seek_v perfection_n in_o that_o love_n and_o honour_n i_o shall_v obey_v he_o and_o expect_v a_o answerable_a benefit_n but_o if_o it_o be_v no_o intelligent_a agent_n or_o i_o can_v know_v that_o it_o be_v so_o than_o i_o can_v owe_v it_o no_o other_o respect_n but_o what_o be_v due_a to_o a_o natural_a instrument_n of_o god_n 2._o to_o the_o matter_n that_o these_o desire_n be_v not_o from_o a_o delude_a fantasy_n but_o the_o work_n of_o god_n i_o prove_v 1._o in_o that_o i_o have_v full_o prove_v they_o already_o to_o be_v our_o duty_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n menand_n to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o the_o heart_n and_o might_n and_o consequent_o to_o desire_v to_o love_v he_o and_o please_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o in_o perfection_n that_o be_v in_o the_o utmost_a of_o our_o capacity_n be_v a_o prove_a duty_n 2._o in_o that_o the_o best_a man_n be_v the_o possessor_n of_o it_o and_o the_o more_o all_o other_o virtue_n and_o obedience_n do_v abound_v the_o more_o this_o abound_v and_o the_o more_o any_o be_v vicious_a impious_a sensual_a worldly_a the_o less_o they_o have_v of_o these_o desire_n after_o god_n 3._o they_o increase_v in_o the_o use_n of_o holy_a mean_n appoint_v by_o god_n and_o they_o decay_v by_o evil_a mean_n all_o sin_n be_v against_o it_o and_o all_o obedience_n do_v promote_v it_o 4._o it_o be_v find_v most_o suitable_a to_o the_o tendency_n of_o our_o faculty_n as_o their_o only_a perfection_n the_o only_a true_a advancement_n of_o reason_n
and_o rectitude_n and_o felicity_n of_o the_o will._n if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o god_n 1._o that_o the_o love_n and_o desire_n of_o god_n be_v kindle_v in_o we_o than_o no_o good_a be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n for_o we_o have_v here_o no_o great_a good_a now_o that_o god_n will_v satisfy_v these_o desire_n be_v prove_v in_o that_o he_o make_v nothing_o in_o vain_a nor_o kindle_v any_o such_o desire_n as_o shall_v deceive_v they_o and_o make_v all_o their_o life_n a_o mere_a delusion_n yea_o and_o do_v this_o by_o the_o very_o best_a of_o man_n none_o of_o this_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n §_o 8._o viii_o if_o there_o be_v no_o life_n of_o retribution_n after_o this_o obedience_n to_o god_n will_v be_v final_o mens_fw-la loss_n and_o ruin_n but_o obedience_n to_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v final_o mens_fw-la loss_n and_o ruin_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v another_o life_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v before_o however_o it_o will_v be_v best_a in_o point_n of_o honesty_n it_o will_v be_v worst_a to_o thousand_o in_o point_n of_o personal_a utility_n even_o to_o all_o those_o that_o forsake_v all_o the_o sinful_a pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n do_v conflict_n with_o their_o flesh_n and_o keep_v it_o under_o and_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o outward_a comfort_n by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o persecutor_n and_o it_o may_v be_v through_o melancholy_a or_o weak_a fear_n have_v little_a comfort_n from_o god_n instead_o of_o they_o and_o at_o last_o perhaps_o be_v torment_v and_o put_v to_o death_n by_o cruelty_n few_o will_v think_v this_o desirable_a for_o itself_o and_o that_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v man_n final_a loss_n and_o ruin_n need_v no_o proof_n but_o this_o that_o he_o have_v make_v our_o self-love_n a_o principle_n inseparable_a from_o our_o nature_n and_o make_v use_v of_o it_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o command_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v final_o for_o our_o good_a 13._o and_o so_o conjoyn_v the_o please_a of_o he_o and_o our_o own_o felicity_n inseparable_o in_o our_o end_n his_o regiment_n be_v paternal_a his_o glory_n which_o he_o seek_v by_o we_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o goodness_n communicate_v and_o accumulate_v on_o we_o this_o take_v in_o with_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o his_o nature_n will_v tell_v any_o man_n that_o to_o be_v a_o loser_n final_o by_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o no_o man_n need_v to_o fear_v he_o do_v not_o serve_v himself_o upon_o we_o to_o our_o hurt_n nor_o command_v we_o that_o which_o will_v undo_v we_o he_o neither_o want_v power_n wisdom_n nor_o goodness_n to_o make_v we_o gainer_n by_o our_o duty_n it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o natural_a justice_n in_o all_o ut_fw-la bonis_fw-la bene_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o malis_fw-la male_a if_o i_o find_v but_o any_o duty_n command_v i_o by_o god_n my_o conscience_n and_o my_o sense_n of_o the_o divine_a perfection_n will_v not_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v ever_o prove_v final_o a_o loser_n by_o perform_v it_o 203._o though_o he_o have_v never_o make_v i_o any_o promise_n of_o reward_n so_o far_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v a_o kind_n of_o promise_n in_o it_o that_o if_o he_o do_v but_o say_v do_v this_o i_o will_v not_o doubt_v but_o the_o do_v of_o it_o be_v for_o my_o good_a and_o if_o he_o bid_v i_o but_o use_v any_o mean_n to_o my_o own_o happiness_n i_o shall_v blaspheme_v if_o i_o suspect_v it_o will_v tend_v to_o my_o loss_n and_o misery_n and_o be_v make_v my_o snare_n §_o 9_o ix_o the_o high_a love_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n be_v never_o a_o work_n of_o imprudence_n or_o folly_n nor_o ever_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o but_o such_o they_o will_v be_v to_o many_o if_o there_o be_v no_o life_n to_o come_v ergo_fw-la by_o imprudence_n and_o folly_n i_o mean_v that_o course_n which_o tend_v to_o our_o own_o undo_n as_o aforesaid_a no_o man_n shall_v ever_o have_v cause_n to_o repent_v of_o his_o fidelity_n to_o god_n and_o say_v i_o do_v foolish_o in_o ruine_v myself_o by_o it_o this_o argument_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a consectary_n of_o the_o former_a i_o pass_v over_o §_o 10._o x._o if_o no_o man_n live_v be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o future_a life_n of_o retribution_n justé_fw-fr than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o life_n but_o no_o man_n live_v be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o life_n ergo_fw-la its_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v the_o major_n be_v prove_v thus_o if_o all_o man_n be_v in_o reason_n oblige_v to_o seek_v the_o happiness_n and_o escape_v the_o punishment_n of_o another_o life_n before_o all_o the_o treasure_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o such_o a_o life_n of_o happiness_n and_o punishment_n there_o be_v but_o if_o no_o man_n be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o life_n the_o bare_a probability_n or_o possibility_n that_o there_o be_v such_o do_v in_o reason_n oblige_v all_o man_n to_o seek_v it_o above_o all_o the_o world_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v certain_a that_o such_o a_o life_n there_o be_v maj._n my_o argument_n be_v from_o our_o obligation_n to_o seek_v it_o before_o all_o to_o the_o certain_a be_v of_o it_o 1._o that_o no_o man_n be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o life_n to_o come_v i_o need_v not_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o no_o man_n ever_o prove_v such_o a_o opinion_n and_o the_o bold_a atheist_n or_o infidel_n say_v no_o more_o than_o that_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o other_o life_n but_o all_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o it_o 2._o if_o so_o then_o that_o the_o possibility_n or_o probability_n oblige_v we_o to_o regard_v it_o in_o our_o hope_n fear_n and_o endeavour_n before_o all_o this_o world_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o incomparableness_n of_o they_o or_o great_a disparity_n of_o the_o thing_n when_o most_o of_o the_o world_n think_v there_o be_v another_o life_n and_o there_o be_v so_o much_o for_o it_o as_o we_o here_o lay_v down_o and_o a_o few_o atheist_n say_v only_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o or_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a though_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n that_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o now_o reason_n command_v every_o man_n that_o love_v himself_o to_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o earthly_a thing_n because_o we_o be_v full_o certain_a beyond_o all_o doubt_n that_o all_o earthly_a thing_n be_v of_o short_a duration_n and_o will_v quick_o leave_v we_o and_o when_o they_o be_v go_v they_o be_v to_o we_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v they_o be_v a_o shadow_n a_o dream_n a_o something_o which_o be_v next_o to_o nothing_o to_o say_v it_o will_v short_o have_v a_o end_n do_v blot_n out_o the_o praise_n and_o embitter_v the_o pleasure_n of_o all_o below_o what_o the_o better_a be_v all_o generation_n past_a for_o all_o the_o wealth_n and_o fleshly_a pleasure_n which_o they_o ever_o receive_v in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o wise_a man_n fin_n but_o will_v prefer_v the_o least_o probability_n of_o attain_v full_a felicity_n and_o escape_v death_n and_o torment_n before_o the_o certainty_n of_o possess_v a_o pin_n or_o a_o penny_n for_o a_o hour_n the_o disparity_n be_v much_o great_a between_o thing_n temporal_a and_o everlasting_a than_o any_o such_o similitude_n can_v reach_v all_o the_o christian_n day_n and_o all_o the_o mahometan_n and_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n of_o the_o world_n do_v hold_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o happiness_n or_o misery_n hereafter_o the_o atheist_n be_v not_o sure_a of_o the_o contrary_a and_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o a_o few_o year_n or_o hour_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o his_o temporal_a pleasure_n and_o equal_a those_o that_o live_v here_o in_o pleasure_n and_o in_o pain_n and_o therefore_o that_o at_o the_o worst_a his_o loss_n or_o hazard_n of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a pleasure_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n considerable_a if_o those_o that_o dissent_n from_o he_o prove_v in_o the_o right_n the_o sensualist_n be_v utter_o undo_v for_o ever_o he_o must_v live_v in_o endless_a pain_n and_o misery_n and_o must_v lose_v a_o endless_a unspeakable_a joy_n and_o glory_n which_o he_o may_v have_v possess_v as_o well_o as_o other_o but_o if_o he_o himself_o prove_v in_o the_o right_n he_o get_v nothing_o by_o it_o but_o the_o please_a of_o inordinate_a concupiscence_n for_o a_o few_o year_n and_o will_v die_v with_o as_o much_o emptiness_n of_o content_a as_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o continual_a pain_n now_o this_o be_v the_o true_a case_n no_o sober_a reason_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o wisdom_n oblige_v
dishonour_n god_n and_o destroy_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o well_o as_o their_o body_n 4._o and_o last_o the_o temptation_n and_o suggestion_n of_o satan_n yea_o and_o oft_o his_o external_a contrive_a snare_n be_v such_o as_o frequent_o give_v man_n a_o palpable_a discovery_n of_o his_o agency_n that_o there_o be_v indeed_o some_o evil_a spirit_n that_o do_v all_o this_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o soul_n be_v there_o no_o such_o tempter_n it_o be_v scarce_o credible_a that_o such_o horrid_a inhuman_a villainy_n shall_v ever_o be_v perpetrate_v by_o a_o rational_a nature_n as_o history_n credible_o report_v and_o as_o in_o this_o age_n our_o eye_n have_v see_v that_o man_n shall_v ever_o even_o against_o their_o own_o apparent_a interest_n be_v carry_v on_o obstinate_o to_o the_o last_o in_o a_o wilful_a course_n of_o such_o sin_n as_o seem_v to_o have_v little_a or_o nothing_o to_o invite_v man_n to_o they_o they_o but_o a_o delight_n in_o do_v hurt_n and_o mischief_n in_o the_o world_n whence_o be_v it_o that_o some_o man_n feel_v such_o violent_a importunate_a suggestion_n to_o evil_a in_o their_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v no_o rest_n from_o they_o but_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o go_v they_o be_v haunt_v with_o they_o till_o they_o have_v commit_v it_o and_o then_o haunt_v as_o much_o to_o hang_v themselves_o in_o desperation_n whence_o be_v it_o that_o all_o opportunity_n be_v so_o strange_o fit_v to_o a_o sinner_n turn_v to_o accommodate_v he_o in_o his_o desire_n and_o design_n and_o that_o such_o wonderful_a successive_a train_n of_o impediment_n be_v set_v in_o the_o way_n of_o almost_o any_o man_n that_o intend_v any_o great_a good_a work_n in_o the_o world_n i_o have_v among_o man_n of_o my_o own_o acquaintance_n observe_v such_o admirable_a frustration_n of_o many_o design_v excellent_a work_n by_o such_o strange_a unexpected_a mean_n soul_n and_o such_o variety_n of_o they_o and_o so_o powerful_o carry_v on_o as_o have_v of_o itself_o convince_v i_o that_o there_o be_v a_o most_o vehement_a invisible_a malice_n permit_v by_o god_n to_o resist_v mankind_n and_o to_o militate_v against_o all_o good_a in_o the_o world_n let_v a_o man_n have_v any_o evil_a design_n and_o he_o may_v carry_v it_o on_o usual_o with_o less_o resistance_n let_v he_o have_v any_o work_n of_o great_a natural_a importance_n which_o tend_v to_o no_o great_a benefit_n to_o mankind_n and_o he_o may_v go_v on_o with_o it_o without_o any_o extraordinary_a impedition_n but_o let_v he_o have_v any_o great_a design_n for_o common_a good_a in_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o destroy_a sin_n to_o heal_v division_n to_o revive_v charity_n to_o increase_v virtue_n to_o save_v man_n soul_n yea_o or_o to_o the_o public_a common_a felicity_n and_o his_o impediment_n shall_v be_v so_o multifarious_a so_o far_o fetch_v so_o subtle_a incessant_a and_o in_o despite_n of_o all_o his_o care_n and_o resolution_n usual_o so_o successful_a that_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v like_o a_o man_n that_o be_v hold_v fast_o hand_n and_o foot_n while_o he_o see_v no_o one_o touch_v he_o or_o that_o see_v a_o hundred_o block_n bring_v and_o cast_v before_o he_o in_o his_o way_n while_o he_o see_v no_o one_o do_v it_o yea_o and_o usual_o the_o great_a attempt_n to_o do_v good_a shall_v turn_v to_o the_o clean_a contrary_n even_o to_o destroy_v the_o good_a which_o be_v intend_v and_o drive_v it_o much_o further_o off_o how_o many_o country_n city_n church_n family_n who_o have_v set_v themselves_o upon_o some_o great_a reformation_n have_v at_o first_o see_v no_o difficulty_n almost_o in_o their_o way_n and_o when_o they_o have_v attempt_v it_o they_o have_v be_v like_o a_o man_n that_o be_v wrestle_v with_o a_o spirit_n though_o he_o see_v not_o what_o it_o be_v that_o hold_v he_o when_o he_o have_v long_o swear_v and_o chafe_v and_o tire_v himself_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o give_v over_o yea_o leave_v behind_o he_o some_o odious_a scandal_n or_o terrible_a example_n to_o frighten_v all_o other_o from_o ever_o meddle_v with_o the_o like_a again_o i_o have_v know_v that_o do_v which_o man_n call_v a_o miracle_n a_o sudden_a deliverance_n in_o a_o hour_n from_o the_o most_o strange_a and_o terrible_a disease_n while_o by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n man_n be_v present_a beg_v the_o deliverance_n and_o present_o the_o devil_n have_v draw_v the_o person_n in_o such_o a_o scandalous_a sin_n that_o god_n have_v none_o of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o deliverance_n nor_o can_v any_o for_o shame_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o but_o it_o turn_v to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o piety_n and_o prayer_n though_o the_o wonder_n be_v past_a doubt_n i_o have_v know_v man_n wonderful_o enlighten_v and_o deliver_v from_o course_n of_o error_n and_o schism_n and_o be_v man_n of_o extraordinary_a worth_n and_o part_n have_v be_v very_o like_a to_o have_v prove_v the_o recovery_n of_o abundance_n more_o and_o they_o have_v be_v so_o unresistible_o carry_v into_o some_o particular_a error_n on_o the_o contrary_a extreme_a that_o all_o the_o hope_n of_o their_o do_v good_a have_v turn_v to_o the_o harden_v of_o other_o in_o their_o schism_n while_o they_o see_v those_o error_n and_o judge_v according_o of_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o change_n but_o especial_o to_o hinder_v the_o success_n of_o godly_a magistrate_n and_o minister_n in_o their_o reforming_n and_o their_o write_n for_o the_o win_n of_o soul_n it_o be_v endless_a to_o show_v the_o strange_a unexpected_a difficulty_n which_o occur_v and_o lamentable_o frustrate_v the_o most_o laudable_a attempt_n nay_o i_o have_v know_v divers_a man_n that_o have_v have_v resolute_a design_n but_o to_o build_v a_o alms-house_n or_o a_o school-house_n or_o to_o settle_v some_o public_a charitable_a work_n that_o when_o all_o thing_n seem_v ready_a and_o no_o difficulty_n appear_v have_v be_v hinder_v in_o despite_n of_o the_o best_a of_o their_o endeavour_n all_o their_o day_n or_o many_o year_n yea_o man_n that_o purpose_v but_o to_o put_v it_o in_o their_o will_n to_o do_v some_o considerable_a work_n of_o charity_n have_v be_v so_o delay_v hinder_v and_o disappoint_v that_o they_o be_v never_o able_a to_o effect_v their_o end_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v very_o perceivable_a to_o a_o observe_a mind_n that_o there_o be_v a_o work_v invisible_a enemy_n still_o seek_v to_o destroy_v all_o godliness_n and_o to_o hinder_v man_n salvation_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v that_o if_o this_o be_v so_o you_o make_v the_o devil_n to_o be_v strong_a than_o god_n and_o to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n or_o to_o be_v more_o in_o hatred_n to_o goodness_n than_o god_n be_v in_o love_n with_o it_o i_o answer_v no_o but_o it_o appear_v that_o his_o enmity_n to_o it_o be_v implacable_a and_o that_o he_o militate_v against_o god_n and_o man_n felicity_n and_o that_o sin_n have_v so_o far_o bring_v this_o low_a world_n under_o god_n displeasure_n that_o he_o have_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n forsake_v it_o and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o satan_n yet_o have_v he_o his_o holy_a seed_n and_o kingdom_n here_o and_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o grace_n shall_v never_o be_v frustrate_v nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v against_o his_o church_n and_o if_o he_o may_v forsake_v hell_n total_o as_o to_o his_o felicitating_a presence_n he_o may_v also_o penal_o forsake_v earth_n as_o to_o the_o great_a number_n while_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v he_o may_v have_v thousand_o of_o orb_n of_o better_a inhabitant_n which_o have_v not_o so_o forfeit_v his_o love_n nor_o be_v not_o so_o forsake_v by_o he_o i_o have_v be_v the_o large_a in_o prove_v a_o life_n to_o come_v 9_o of_o retribution_n to_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a because_o all_o religion_n do_v depend_v upon_o it_o and_o i_o have_v myself_o be_v more_o assault_v with_o temptation_n to_o doubt_v of_o this_o than_o of_o christianity_n itself_o though_o this_o have_v more_o of_o natural_a evidence_n and_o i_o have_v set_v down_o nothing_o that_o i_o be_o able_a rational_o to_o confute_v myself_o though_o every_o truth_n be_v liable_a to_o some_o snarl_a exception_n of_o half-witted_a and_o contentious_a man_n 9_o no_o man_n that_o confess_v a_o life_n to_o come_v can_v question_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n but_o i_o have_v thought_n meet_v first_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v our_o unquestionable_a duty_n as_o the_o prius_fw-la cognitum_fw-la and_o thence_o to_o prove_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o future_a state_n for_o indeed_o 88_o though_o god_n have_v not_o hide_v from_o we_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o reward_n and_o punishment_n hope_n and_o fear_n yet_o have_v he_o make_v our_o duty_n plain_a in_o the_o main_a and_o propose_v it_o first_o to_o our_o knowledge_n and_o
which_o he_o be_v man_n end_n and_o happiness_n as_o if_o all_o the_o goodness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o counterpoise_v the_o base_a and_o brutish_a pleasure_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o drive_v the_o rational_a soul_n to_o god_n it_o be_v his_o efficient_a goodness_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o 26._o and_o thus_o it_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o void_a of_o love_n to_o god_n for_o love_n be_v desirous_a to_o please_v 27._o it_o be_v a_o set_n up_o the_o sordid_a creature_n for_o our_o end_n as_o if_o it_o be_v more_o attractive_a and_o amiable_a than_o god_n and_o fit_a to_o content_v and_o delight_v the_o soul_n 28._o it_o be_v a_o contempt_n of_o all_o that_o glorious_a happiness_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o god_n have_v warrant_v the_o righteous_a to_o expect_v as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o all_o so_o good_a as_o the_o defile_n transitory_a pleasure_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v not_o recompense_v we_o for_o all_o that_o we_o can_v do_v or_o suffer_v for_o god_n 29._o it_o be_v the_o silence_v and_o lay_v by_o our_o reason_n by_o inconsiderateness_n or_o the_o pervert_n and_o abuse_v of_o it_o by_o error_n in_o the_o great_a matter_n for_o which_o it_o be_v give_v we_o and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o voluntary_a drunkenness_n or_o madness_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o our_o felicity_n 30._o it_o be_v a_o set_n up_o our_o sense_n and_o appetite_n above_o our_o reason_n and_o make_v ourselves_o in_o use_n as_o beast_n by_o set_v up_o the_o low_a beastial_a faculty_n to_o rule_v 6._o 31._o it_o be_v the_o deformity_n monstrosity_n disorder_n sickness_n and_o abuse_n of_o a_o noble_a creature_n who_o god_n make_v in_o our_o measure_n like_v himself_o and_o so_o a_o contemptuous_a deface_v of_o his_o image_n 32._o it_o be_v a_o rob_v god_n of_o that_o glory_n of_o his_o holiness_n which_o shall_v shine_v forth_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o life_n and_o of_o that_o complacency_n which_o he_o will_v take_v in_o our_o love_n obedience_n perfection_n and_o felicity_n 33._o it_o be_v the_o pervert_n and_o moral_a destruction_n not_o only_o of_o our_o own_o faculty_n which_o be_v make_v for_o god_n but_o of_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v within_o our_o reach_n turn_v all_o that_o against_o god_n and_o our_o happiness_n which_o be_v give_v we_o for_o they_o yea_o it_o be_v worse_a than_o cast_v they_o all_o away_o while_o we_o use_v they_o contrary_a to_o their_o nature_n against_o their_o owner_n and_o their_o end_n 34._o 5._o it_o be_v thus_o a_o preach_v in_o the_o moral_a order_n and_o harmony_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v the_o destroy_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o dislocation_n or_o rejection_n of_o some_o part_n of_o a_o clock_n or_o watch_n be_v a_o disorder_v of_o the_o whole_a and_o as_o a_o wound_n to_o the_o hand_n or_o foot_n be_v a_o wrong_n to_o the_o body_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wound_n to_o every_o society_n where_o it_o be_v commit_v and_o a_o injury_n to_o every_o individual_a who_o be_v tempt_v or_o afflict_v by_o it_o 35._o it_o be_v a_o contradict_v of_o our_o own_o profession_n confession_n understanding_n and_o promise_n to_o god_n 36._o it_o be_v a_o prefer_n of_o a_o inch_n of_o hasty_a time_n before_o the_o durable_a life_n to_o come_v and_o thing_n that_o we_o know_v be_v of_o short_a continuance_n before_o those_o of_o which_o we_o can_v see_v no_o end_n 37._o it_o be_v the_o prefer_n of_o a_o corruptible_a flesh_n and_o its_o pleasure_n before_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v more_o noble_a and_o durable_a 38._o it_o be_v a_o unmercifulness_n and_o inhuman_a cruelty_n to_o ourselves_o not_o only_o defile_v soul_n and_o body_n but_o cast_v they_o on_o the_o displeasure_n and_o punishing-justice_n of_o their_o great_a and_o terrible_a creator_n 39_o it_o be_v the_o gratify_n of_o the_o malicious_a tempter_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o soul_n the_o do_v his_o will_n and_o receive_v his_o image_n instead_o of_o god_n 40._o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v voluntary_o without_o constraint_n by_o a_o rational_a free-agent_n in_o the_o open_a light_n and_o for_o a_o thing_n of_o nought_o beside_o what_o christian_n only_o can_v discern_v all_o this_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n do_v reveal_v to_o be_v in_o the_o malignity_n of_o sin_n §_o 8._o sin_n be_v certain_o no_o better_o a_o thing_n than_o be_v here_o describe_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o it_o deserve_v punishment_n §_o 9_o and_o reason_n tell_v we_o leg_n that_o god_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o perfect_a government_n be_v his_o perfect_a work_n and_o glory_n in_o that_o relation_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o in_o such_o a_o divine_a and_o perfect_a government_n so_o odious_a a_o evil_n be_v put_v up_o and_o such_o contempt_n of_o god_n and_o all_o that_o be_v good_a be_v pass_v by_o without_o such_o execution_n of_o his_o law_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o governor_n and_o to_o vindicate_v his_o law_n and_o authority_n from_o contempt_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v pardon_v on_o any_o term_n but_o such_o as_o shall_v sufficient_o attain_v the_o end_n of_o perfect_a government_n the_o end_n of_o punishment_n be_v 1._o to_o do_v justice_n and_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n 2._o to_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o governor_n from_o contempt_n and_o treason_n 3._o to_o prevent_v further_a evil_a from_o the_o same_o offendor_n 4._o to_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o other_o and_o to_o prevent_v the_o hurt_n that_o impunity_n will_v encourage_v they_o to_o 5._o and_o if_o it_o be_v but_o mere_o castigatory_a it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o sinner_n himself_o but_o in_o pure_o vindictive_a punishment_n it_o be_v the_o governor_n and_o society_n that_o be_v the_o end_n m●nd_n 1._o it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o the_o immediate_a sense_n of_o the_o precept_n e.g._n thou_o shall_v do_v no_o murder_n be_v not_o the_o eventu_fw-la it_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o the_o debito_fw-la thy_o duty_n be_v to_o forbear_v it_o so_o also_o the_o immediate_a sense_n of_o the_o penal_a part_n be_v not_o the_o eventu_fw-la e._n g_o i_o lie_v murder_v thou_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o de_fw-mi debito_fw-la death_n shall_v be_v thy_o due_n thou_o shall_v be_v reus_n mortis_fw-la so_o that_o if_o it_o do_v non_fw-fr evenire_fw-la it_o be_v not_o present_o a_o falsehood_n but_o it_o be_v as_o true_a j●ve●_n that_o when_o the_o sovereign_n make_v a_o law_n he_o thereby_o declare_v that_o this_o law_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n that_o it_o be_v norma_n officii_fw-la &_o judicii_fw-la that_o the_o subject_n must_v do_v according_a to_o it_o pen._n and_o expect_v to_o be_v do_v by_o according_a to_o it_o that_o it_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o government_n therefore_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v declare_v by_o it_o 1._o that_o ordinary_o judgement_n and_o execution_n shall_v pass_v according_a to_o it_o 2._o that_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v extraordinary_o dispense_v with_o by_o sovereignty_n but_o upon_o term_n which_o as_o well_o declare_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o governor_n and_o discourage_v offender_n from_o contempt_n and_o be_v as_o fit_a to_o preserve_v the_o common_a good_a and_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o sovereign_n so_o that_o thus_o far_o a_o law_n do_v assert_v also_o the_o event_n which_o i_o put_v to_o prevent_v objection_n and_o to_o show_v that_o truth_n and_o justice_n require_v the_o ordinary_a execution_n of_o just_a and_o necessary_a law_n 28._o 2._o and_o shall_v they_o be_v ordinary_o dispense_v with_o it_o will_v intimate_v that_o the_o ruler_n do_v he_o know_v not_o what_o in_o make_v they_o that_o he_o repent_v of_o they_o a_o unjust_a or_o over-saw_a himself_o in_o they_o or_o foresee_v not_o inconvenience_n or_o be_v not_o able_a to_o see_v they_o execute_v it_o will_v also_o make_v he_o seem_v a_o deceiver_n that_o affright_a subject_n with_o that_o which_o he_o never_o intend_v to_o do_v which_o omnipotency_n omniscience_n and_o perfect_a goodness_n can_v do_v what_o ever_o impotent_a ignorant_a bad_a man_n may_v do_v 3._o and_o the_o offendor_n must_v be_v disable_v when_o penitency_n show_v not_o the_o change_n of_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o do_v so_o no_o more_o and_o therefore_o death_n be_v ordinary_o inflict_v 4._o and_o especial_o offence_n must_v be_v prevent_v and_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o sovereign_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n be_v preserve_v if_o law_n be_v not_o execute_v they_o and_o the_o lawgiver_n will_v be_v despise_v other_o will_v be_v let_v loose_a and_o invite_v to_o do_v evil_a and_o no_o man_n right_n will_v have_v any_o security_n by_o the_o law_n therefore_o it_o
have_v mercy_n upon_o yourselves_o and_o do_v not_o refuse_v and_o obstinate_o refuse_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o then_o call_v he_o unmerciful_a have_v pity_n on_o your_o own_o soul_n be_v not_o so_o cruel_a against_o yourselves_o as_o to_o run_v into_o endless_a misery_n for_o nothing_o and_o then_o think_v to_o lay_v the_o blame_n on_o god_n god_n call_v now_o to_o you_o in_o your_o sin_n and_o wilfulness_n and_o intreat_v you_o to_o have_v mercy_n on_o yourselves_o and_o then_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o you_o in_o the_o day_n of_o your_o distress_n but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o but_o will_v have_v none_o of_o his_o mercy_n now_o wonder_v not_o if_o in_o vain_a you_o cry_v to_o he_o for_o it_o then_o obj._n but_o i_o will_v not_o so_o use_v a_o enemy_n of_o my_o own_o 14._o answ_n 1._o he_o do_v not_o deserve_v it_o for_o you_o be_v not_o go_n 2._o you_o be_v not_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o his_o fault_n respect_v not_o any_o such_o law_n and_o judgement_n of_o you_o by_o which_o the_o world_n must_v be_v govern_v 3._o nor_o have_v you_o the_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a to_o all_o yet_o be_v you_o not_o bind_v yourselves_o to_o take_v complacency_n in_o the_o evil_a of_o your_o enemy_n but_o to_o use_v just_a mean_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o a_o better_a mind_n and_o state_n §_o 37._o the_o sum_n of_o all_o here_o prove_v be_v that_o all_o sin_n deserve_v endless_a misery_n and_o natural_o induce_v to_o it_o and_o that_o all_o ungodly_a impenitent_a soul_n shall_v certain_o undergo_v it_o and_o that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v from_o this_o misery_n but_o by_o turn_v to_o god_n and_o be_v save_v from_o their_o sin_n chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o present_a sinful_a and_o miserable_a state_n of_o this_o world_n cap._n §_o 1._o though_o all_o man_n may_v know_v all_o this_o before_o say_v to_o be_v their_o duty_n friendship_n and_o sin_n to_o be_v so_o evil_a and_o to_o deserve_v such_o punishment_n yet_o none_o do_v live_v perfect_o without_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n i_o have_v hear_v but_o of_o few_o that_o pretend_v to_o such_o perfection_n and_o those_o few_o have_v confute_v their_o own_o pretence_n and_o be_v the_o further_a from_o it_o of_o many_o other_o and_o therefore_o this_o i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o prove_v §_o 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n do_v bend_v their_o mind_n and_o life_n to_o the_o satisfy_n of_o their_o flesh_n and_o live_v in_o ungodliness_n intemperance_n and_o unrighteousness_n neglect_v god_n and_o future_a happiness_n and_o that_o holy_a life_n which_o be_v the_o way_n thereto_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o public_a or_o common_a fact_n do_v need_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n §_o 3._o yea_o there_o be_v a_o averseness_n and_o enmity_n in_o they_o to_o the_o life_n which_o god_n in_o nature_n do_v prescribe_v they_o and_o a_o strong_a inclination_n to_o a_o fleshly_a life_n there_o need_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o this_o than_o the_o wonderful_a difficulty_n which_o we_o find_v in_o persuade_v man_n to_o change_v their_o life_n to_o live_v to_o god_n and_o to_o forsake_v their_o sensuality_n and_o worldliness_n and_o the_o abundance_n of_o reason_n and_o labour_n that_o be_v lose_v upon_o they_o when_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o make_v they_o willing_a §_o 4._o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o effect_n that_o much_o of_o this_o come_v with_o we_o into_o the_o world_n 1._o how_o else_o shall_v it_o be_v so_o universal_a as_o it_o be_v how_o shall_v it_o be_v find_v in_o all_o sort_n of_o constitution_n and_o complexion_n and_o in_o every_o country_n and_o age_n till_o now_o 2._o how_o shall_v it_o work_v so_o early_o in_o child_n as_o common_o it_o do_v 3._o how_o come_v it_o to_o prevail_v against_o the_o best_a education_n help_n and_o mean_n certain_o all_o of_o we_o feel_v from_o our_o childhood_n too_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o §_o 5._o this_o natural_a pravity_n be_v quick_o increase_v aurel._n by_o the_o advantage_n of_o sensuality_n which_o be_v active_a before_o reason_n come_v to_o any_o power_n of_o resistance_n and_o so_o get_v strong_a possession_n by_o custom_n and_o grow_v to_o a_o confirm_a habit_n §_o 6._o and_o if_o vicious_a education_n by_o vicious_a parent_n be_v add_v and_o bad_a company_n second_o that_o and_o the_o vulgar_a course_n or_o ruler_n countenance_n concur_v the_o corrupt_a inclination_n be_v quick_o more_o radicate_v and_o next_o to_o a_o nature_n §_o 7._o many_o so_o far_o prevail_v against_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n 42_o as_o to_o grow_v strange_a to_o god_n and_o to_o themselves_o to_o their_o end_n and_o their_o work_n even_o to_o doubt_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v any_o other_o life_n to_o live_v and_o whether_o holiness_n be_v good_a and_o necessary_a and_o sin_n be_v bad_a and_o deserve_v any_o punishment_n §_o 8._o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o sottish_a unteachableness_n on_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o man_n inveniat_fw-la which_o hinder_v their_o conviction_n and_o reformation_n §_o 9_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o senseless_a stupidity_n and_o hardheartedness_n on_o man_n which_o make_v they_o sleepy_o neglect_v the_o great_a thing_n which_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o §_o 10._o there_o be_v in_o most_o a_o marvellous_a inconsiderateness_n as_o if_o they_o have_v not_o their_o reason_n awake_a to_o use_v so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o sober_o and_o serious_o think_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o deeplye_v concern_v they_o §_o 11._o most_o man_n be_v so_o take_v up_o with_o the_o concernment_n of_o their_o body_n sterquilinia_fw-la that_o their_o mind_n be_v pre-occupyed_n and_o make_v unfit_a for_o high_a thing_n all_o this_o be_v prove_v if_o we_o walk_v but_o in_o the_o world_n with_o open_a eye_n §_o 12._o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o fleshly_a pleasure_n be_v so_o powerful_a in_o the_o most_o that_o they_o love_v not_o the_o holy_a law_n of_o god_n which_o forbid_v they_o that_o sensuality_n and_o command_v they_o a_o holy_a and_o temperate_a life_n they_o be_v like_o child_n that_o cry_v for_o what_o they_o love_v stob._n and_o will_v not_o be_v restrain_v by_o tell_v they_o that_o its_o unwholesome_a reason_n signify_v nothing_o with_o they_o as_o long_o as_o sense_n and_o appetite_n gainsay_v it_o they_o be_v angry_a with_o all_o that_o cross_v their_o appetite_n though_o it_o be_v to_o save_v their_o life_n the_o sense_n be_v become_v the_o predominant_a power_n in_o they_o and_o reason_n be_v dethrone_v and_o have_v leave_v its_o power_n therefore_o god_n law_n be_v unacceptable_a and_o hateful_a to_o these_o brutish_a people_n because_o it_o be_v quite_o against_o their_o inclination_n and_o that_o which_o the_o flesh_n do_v call_v their_o interest_n and_o good_n §_o 13._o therefore_o they_o love_v not_o those_o who_o press_v they_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o this_o law_n which_o be_v so_o ungrateful_a to_o they_o and_o who_o condemn_v their_o sin_n by_o the_o holiness_n of_o their_o life_n and_o that_o awaken_v their_o guilty_a conscience_n by_o the_o serious_a mention_n of_o the_o retribution_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v man_n all_o this_o be_v bitter_a to_o the_o taste_n and_o the_o reasonableness_n necessity_n and_o future_a benefit_n be_v thing_n that_o they_o be_v much_o insensible_a of_o §_o 14._o therefore_o they_o love_v not_o god_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v holy_a and_o govern_v they_o by_o a_o holy_a law_n which_o be_v so_o much_o against_o their_o inclination_n such_o as_o he_o forbid_v they_o all_o their_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o threaten_v damnation_n to_o they_o if_o they_o rebel_v especial_o as_o his_o justice_n will_v execute_v this_o indeed_o their_o aversation_n from_o god_n in_o these_o respect_n be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o hate_v he_o as_o god_n §_o 15._o these_o vice_n work_v continual_o in_o man_n heart_n do_v fill_v they_o with_o deceive_a thought_n and_o distract_n passion_n and_o unquietness_n and_o engage_v they_o in_o self-troubling_a way_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o of_o the_o well-grounded_n hope_v of_o future_a blessedness_n plutarch_n though_o they_o have_v such_o a_o present_a pleasure_n as_o prevail_v with_o they_o it_o bring_v speedy_a smart_n and_o trouble_v just_o like_o the_o pleasure_n of_o scratch_v to_o a_o man_n that_o have_v the_o itch_n which_o be_v quick_o recompense_v with_o smart_n if_o he_o go_v deep_a or_o like_o the_o pleasure_n of_o drink_v cold_a water_n to_o a_o man_n in_o a_o fever_n or_o a_o dropsy_n 117._o which_o increase_v the_o disease_n
its_o own_o nature_n and_o not_o mere_o by_o their_o abuse_n and_o if_o it_o end_v in_o misery_n by_o the_o designment_n of_o the_o giver_n and_o the_o tendency_n of_o the_o gift_n than_o be_v it_o as_o you_o say_v no_o mercy_n but_o a_o plague_n but_o it_o be_v mercy_n which_o in_o its_o nature_n and_o by_o the_o donor_n will_v have_v a_o fitness_n and_o tendency_n to_o man_n recovery_n and_o to_o prevent_v their_o misery_n and_o they_o be_v command_v and_o entreat_v according_o to_o use_v it_o and_o be_v warn_v of_o the_o danger_n of_o abuse_n obj._n but_o god_n know_v when_o he_o give_v it_o they_o that_o they_o will_v so_o abuse_v it_o answ_n god_n foreknowledge_n or_o omniscience_n be_v his_o perfection_n and_o will_v you_o argue_v from_o thence_o against_o his_o mercy_n his_o foreknowledge_n of_o man_n sin_n and_o misery_n cause_v they_o not_o what_o if_o he_o foreknow_v they_o not_o be_v it_o any_o praise_n to_o he_o to_o be_v ignorant_a and_o yet_o the_o mercy_n will_v be_v but_o the_o same_o if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n way_n till_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v omniscient_a or_o till_o he_o prevent_v all_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n which_o he_o foreknow_v you_o will_v perish_v in_o your_o enmity_n and_o he_o will_v easy_o justify_v his_o mercy_n against_o such_o accusation_n obj._n but_o god_n can_v give_v man_n so_o much_o more_o grace_n as_o to_o prevent_v man_n sin_n and_o misery_n if_o he_o will_v answ_n true_a he_o be_v not_o unable_a and_o so_o he_o can_v make_v every_o clod_n a_o tree_n and_o every_o tree_n a_o beast_n and_o every_o beast_n a_o man_n and_o every_o man_n a_o angel_n as_o i_o say_v before_o but_o must_v he_o therefore_o do_v it_o here_o note_n that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v of_o any_o punishment_n this_n be_v so_o deserve_v that_o god_n may_v inflict_v it_o if_o he_o please_v without_o injustice_n yea_o and_o thereby_o demonstrate_v his_o justice_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o say_v this_n be_v so_o due_a that_o god_n must_v or_o will_v inflict_v it_o if_o he_o will_v be_v just_a unless_o a_o compensation_n be_v make_v to_o justice_n it_o be_v of_o the_o first_o sort_n that_o i_o be_o now_o speak_v for_o god_n may_v have_v variety_n of_o time_n and_o measure_n and_o kind_n of_o punishment_n which_o he_o may_v use_v at_o his_o own_o choice_n and_o yet_o not_o leave_v the_o sin_n unpunished_a final_o but_o whether_o he_o proper_o dispense_v with_o any_o law_n which_o be_v determinate_a as_o to_o the_o penalty_n i_o be_o not_o now_o to_o speak_v it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o this_o place_n and_o subject_n §_o 3._o therefore_o god_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n and_o measure_n pardon_v sin_n to_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n while_o he_o remit_v some_o measure_n of_o the_o deserve_a punishment_n to_o remit_v or_o forgive_v the_o punishment_n be_v so_o far_o to_o forgive_v the_o sin_n for_o forgiveness_n as_o to_o execution_n be_v but_o non_fw-la punire_fw-la proceed_v from_o commiseration_n or_o mercy_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a by_o all_o the_o mercy_n bestow_v on_o they_o that_o god_n remit_v something_o of_o the_o punishment_n which_o in_o law_n and_o justice_n he_o may_v inflict_v though_o this_o be_v not_o a_o total_a pardon_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o none_o at_o all_o §_o 4._o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n nature_n with_o this_o universal_a experience_n of_o the_o world_n possess_v all_o man_n mind_n with_o this_o apprehension_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v gracious_a merciful_a long-suffering_a and_o ready_a to_o forgive_v a_o capable_a subject_n upon_o term_n consistent_a with_o his_o truth_n and_o honour_n and_o the_o common_a good_a pont._n it_o be_v true_a that_o self-love_n and_o self-flattery_n do_v cause_n man_n to_o think_v of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o indulgent_a to_o their_o lust_n and_o suitable_a to_o their_o fleshly_a desire_n and_o therefore_o their_o conceit_n be_v none_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o mercy_n but_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o this_o foresay_a conception_n of_o god_n as_o merciful_a and_o ready_a to_o forgive_v a_o capable_a subject_n be_v warrant_v by_o the_o sober_a reason_n theb._n and_o be_v not_o breed_v by_o sin_n and_o error_n for_o the_o wise_a and_o better_a and_o less_o sinful_a any_o be_v the_o more_o he_o be_v incline_v to_o such_o thought_n of_o god_n as_o of_o a_o part_n of_o his_o perfection_n §_o 5._o this_o apprehension_n be_v increase_v in_o mankind_n by_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o forgive_v one_o another_o for_o though_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o god_n must_v forgive_v all_o that_o which_o he_o bind_v we_o to_o forgive_v for_o the_o reason_n before_o express_v yet_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n proceed_v from_o that_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v his_o perfection_n and_o that_o they_o bear_v the_o image_n of_o they_o and_o that_o the_o obey_n of_o they_o tend_v to_o form_v we_o more_o to_o his_o image_n ourselves_o and_o to_o make_v we_o holy_a as_o he_o be_v holy_a and_o therefore_o that_o this_o command_n of_o god_n to_o man_n to_o be_v merciful_a and_o forgive_v do_v intimate_v to_o we_o that_o mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n be_v agreeable_a and_o please_a unto_o god_n stobaeo_n §_o 6._o god_n can_v cast_v away_o from_o his_o love_n and_o from_o felicity_n any_o soul_n which_o true_o love_v he_o above_o all_o and_o which_o so_o repent_v of_o his_o sin_n as_o to_o turn_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n here_o seem_v to_o arise_v before_o we_o a_o considerable_a difficulty_n that_o god_n can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o damn_v one_o that_o true_o love_v he_o vatin_n and_o be_v sanctify_v be_v incredible_a because_o 1._o then_o god_n own_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o hell_n and_o a_o saint_n be_v damn_v 2._o because_o then_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v readyer_n to_o love_n god_n than_o god_n to_o love_v he_o 3._o then_o a_o soul_n in_o hell_n shall_v have_v holy_a desire_n prayer_n praise_n and_o other_o act_n of_o love_n 4._o and_o a_o soul_n capable_a of_o the_o glorify_v mercy_n of_o god_n shall_v miss_v of_o it_o this_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o god_n can_v but_o take_v complacency_n in_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o those_o will_v be_v happy_a that_o god_n take_v complacency_n in_o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n do_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o they_o that_o love_n god_n deserve_v death_n and_o misery_n according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o may_v he_o not_o inflict_v that_o on_o man_n which_o they_o deserve_v do_v not_o justice_n require_v punishment_n on_o they_o 2._o that_o yet_o sin_v not_o away_o the_o love_n of_o god_n nor_o a_o state_n of_o holiness_n to_o this_o some_o answer_n that_o all_o those_o that_o consist_v with_o love_n and_o holiness_n be_v venial_a sin_n which_o deserve_v only_o temporal_a chastisement_n and_o not_o perpetual_a misery_n i_o rather_o answer_v finib_fw-la 1._o that_o all_o sin_n consider_v in_o itself_o abstract_v from_o the_o cause_n which_o counterballance_v it_o and_o procure_v pardon_v mercy_n do_v deserve_v perpetual_a misery_n and_o therefore_o so_o do_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o best_a in_o themselves_o consider_v but_o that_o grace_n which_o cause_v their_o sanctification_n and_o their_o love_n to_o god_n destruction_n do_v conjunct_o cause_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o that_o god_n will_v not_o deal_v with_o such_o as_o in_o rigour_n they_o deserve_v 2._o and_o if_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o that_o love_n god_n shall_v provoke_v he_o to_o cast_v they_o into_o hell_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o one_o that_o love_v god_n in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la shall_v be_v damn_v for_o god_n have_v a_o order_n in_o his_o punishment_n and_o first_o he_o will_v withdraw_v his_o grace_n from_o such_o a_o one_o and_o leave_v he_o to_o himself_o and_o then_o he_o will_v no_o long_o love_n god_n and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o a_o lover_n of_o god_n that_o will_v be_v damn_v §_o 7._o the_o sinful_a world_n be_v not_o so_o far_o forsake_v of_o god_n as_o to_o be_v shut_v up_o under_o desperation_n and_o utter_a impossibility_n of_o recovery_n and_o salvation_n for_o if_o that_o be_v so_o they_o be_v not_o in_o via_n or_o under_o a_o obligation_n to_o use_v any_o mean_n or_o accept_v of_o any_o mercy_n in_o order_n to_o their_o recovery_n nor_o can_v they_o rational_o do_v it_o or_o be_v persuade_v to_o it_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v where_o there_o be_v no_o end_n to_o be_v attain_v and_o no_o hope_n of_o success_n §_o 8._o the_o light_n of_o nature_n hor._n and_o the_o foresay_a deal_n of_o god_n with_o man_n continue_v they_o under_o his_o government_n in_o
nor_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o physical_a impossibility_n be_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o crime_n or_o of_o condemnation_n §_o 19_o if_o any_o person_n be_v bring_v by_o these_o mean_n alone_o to_o repent_v unfeigned_o of_o a_o ungodly_a uncharitable_a and_o intemperate_a life_n and_o to_o love_n god_n unfeigned_o as_o their_o god_n above_o all_o and_o to_o live_v a_o holy_a obedient_a life_n god_n will_v not_o condemn_v such_o person_n though_o they_o want_v supernatural_a revelation_n of_o his_o will_n as_o i_o show_v before_o §_o 6._o §_o 20._o corruption_n when_o sinner_n stand_v at_o many_o degree_n distant_a from_o god_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o mercy_n will_v draw_v they_o near_o he_o by_o degree_n they_o that_o have_v help_v and_o mercy_n sufficient_a in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la to_o have_v draw_v they_o near_o god_n and_o refuse_v to_o obey_v it_o do_v forfeit_v the_o further_a help_n of_o mercy_n and_o may_v just_o perish_v and_o be_v forsake_v by_o he_o though_o their_o help_n be_v not_o immediate_o sufficient_a to_o all_o the_o further_a degree_n of_o duty_n which_o they_o be_v to_o do_v these_o thing_n as_o clear_v in_o their_o proper_a light_n i_o stand_v not_o to_o prove_v because_o i_o will_v not_o be_v unnecessary_o tedious_a to_o the_o reader_n and_o so_o much_o of_o godliness_n or_o religion_n as_o reveal_v by_o natural_a light_n obj._n but_o all_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n find_v not_o all_o this_o in_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n which_o you_o say_v be_v there_o answ_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o what_o man_n do_v see_v but_o what_o they_o may_v see_v if_o they_o will_v improve_v their_o reason_n all_o this_o be_v undeniable_o legible_a in_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o infant_n the_o idiot_n the_o illiterate_a the_o scholar_n the_o smatterer_n the_o doctor_n the_o considerate_a the_o inconsiderate_a the_o sensual_a the_o blind_a and_o the_o willing_a diligent_a enquirer_n do_v not_o equal_o see_v and_o read_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o character_n to_o all_o part_n ii_o of_o christianity_n and_o supernatural_a revelation_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o great_a need_n of_o a_o clear_a light_n or_o full_a revelation_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n than_o all_o that_o have_v be_v open_v before_o whilst_o i_o resolve_v upon_o a_o deep_a and_o faithful_a search_n into_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o a_o review_n and_o trial_n of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v myself_o believe_v i_o think_v meet_v first_o to_o pass_v by_o person_n and_o shut_v up_o my_o book_n and_o with_o retire_a reason_n to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o nature_n only_o and_o what_o i_o have_v there_o find_v i_o have_v just_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o former_a part_n purposely_o omit_v all_o that_o may_v be_v controvert_v by_o any_o considerable_a sober_a reason_n that_o i_o may_v neither_o stop_v myself_o nor_o my_o reader_n in_o the_o way_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o deceive_v myself_o with_o plausible_a consequence_n of_o unsound_a or_o questionable_a antecedent_n nor_o discourage_v my_o reader_n by_o the_o cast_n of_o some_o doubtful_a passage_n in_o his_o way_n which_o may_v tempt_v he_o to_o question_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o i_o know_v what_o a_o deal_n of_o handsome_a structure_n may_v fall_v through_o the_o falseness_n of_o some_o one_o of_o the_o support_n which_o seem_v to_o stand_v a_o great_a way_n out_o of_o sight_n and_o i_o have_v be_v weary_v myself_o with_o subtle_a discourse_n of_o learned_a man_n who_o in_o a_o long_a series_n of_o ergo_n have_v think_v that_o they_o have_v leave_v all_o sure_a behind_o they_o when_o a_o few_o false_a supposition_n be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o and_o i_o know_v that_o he_o who_o interpose_v any_o doubtful_a thing_n do_v raise_v a_o diffidence_n in_o the_o reader_n be_v mind_n which_o make_v he_o suspect_v that_o the_o ground_n he_o stand_v on_o be_v not_o firm_a and_o whether_o all_o that_o he_o read_v be_v not_o mere_a uncertain_a thing_n sen._n therefore_o leave_v thing_n controvertable_a for_o a_o fit_a place_n and_o time_n i_o have_v thus_o far_o take_v up_o so_o much_o as_o be_v plain_a and_o sure_a which_o i_o find_v of_o more_o importance_n and_o usefulness_n to_o my_o own_o information_n and_o confirmation_n than_o any_o of_o those_o controvertible_a point_n will_v be_v if_o i_o can_v never_o so_o certain_o determine_v they_o and_o now_o have_v peruse_v the_o book_n of_o nature_n i_o shall_v cast_v up_o the_o account_n and_o try_v what_o be_v yet_o want_v and_o look_v abroad_o into_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o in_o the_o world_n and_o search_v whence_o that_o which_o be_v yet_o want_v may_v be_v most_o full_o and_o safe_o and_o certain_o supply_v §_o 1._o and_o first_o when_o i_o look_v throughout_o the_o world_n i_o find_v that_o though_o all_o the_o evidence_n aforesaid_a for_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o holy_a virtuous_a life_n be_v unquestionable_a in_o naturâ_fw-la rerum_fw-la yet_o most_o of_o the_o world_n observe_v it_o not_o or_o discern_v but_o little_a of_o it_o nor_o much_o regard_n the_o light_n without_o or_o the_o secret_a witness_n of_o their_o conscience_n within_o natural_a light_n or_o evidence_n be_v so_o unsuccessful_a in_o the_o world_n that_o it_o loud_o tell_v we_o something_o be_v yet_o want_v what_o ever_o it_o be_v we_o can_v discern_v what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n happiness_n but_o we_o can_v hardly_o discern_v whether_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la any_o considerable_a number_n at_o best_o do_v by_o the_o teach_n of_o nature_n alone_o attain_v it_o when_o we_o inquire_v into_o the_o write_n of_o the_o best_a of_o the_o philosopher_n we_o find_v so_o little_a evidence_n of_o real_a holiness_n that_o be_v of_o the_o foresay_a resignation_n subjection_n and_o love_n to_o god_n as_o god_n that_o it_o leave_v we_o much_o in_o doubt_n whether_o indeed_o they_o be_v holy_a themselves_o or_o not_o and_o whether_o they_o make_v the_o knowledge_n love_n obedience_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o end_n and_o business_n of_o their_o life_n however_o there_o be_v too_o great_a evidence_n that_o the_o world_n lie_v in_o darkness_n and_o wickedness_n where_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o natural_a light_n §_o 2._o i_o find_v therefore_o that_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n concern_v our_o duty_n and_o our_o end_n called_z the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o very_o great_a difficulty_n to_o they_o that_o have_v no_o supernatural_a light_n to_o help_v they_o though_o all_o this_o be_v legible_a in_o nature_n which_o i_o have_v thence_o transcribe_v yet_o if_o i_o have_v not_o have_v another_o teacher_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o ever_o i_o shall_v have_v find_v it_o there_o nature_n be_v now_o a_o very_a hard_a book_n when_o i_o have_v learn_v it_o by_o my_o teacher_n help_n i_o can_v tell_v partly_o what_o be_v there_o but_o at_o the_o first_o perusal_n i_o can_v not_o understand_v it_o it_o require_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o time_n and_o study_v and_o help_v to_o understand_v that_o which_o when_o we_o do_v understand_v it_o be_v as_o plain_a to_o we_o as_o the_o highway_n §_o 3._o thence_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v 4._o that_o it_o will_v be_v but_o few_o that_o will_v attain_v to_o understand_v the_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n aright_o by_o that_o mean_v alone_o and_o the_o multitude_n will_v be_v lest_o in_o darkness_n still_o the_o common_a people_n have_v not_o leisure_n for_o so_o deep_a and_o long_o a_o search_n into_o nature_n as_o a_o few_o philosopher_n make_v nor_o be_v they_o dispose_v to_o it_o and_o though_o reason_n oblige_v they_o in_o so_o necessary_a a_o case_n to_o break_v through_o all_o difficulty_n they_o have_v not_o so_o full_a use_n of_o their_o reason_n as_o to_o do_v it_o obj._n but_o as_o christian_a teacher_n do_v instruct_v the_o people_n in_o that_o which_o they_o can_v have_v leisure_n to_o search_v out_o themselves_o so_o why_o may_v not_o philosopher_n who_o have_v leisure_n for_o the_o search_n in_o his_o truct_v the_o people_n quick_o who_o have_v not_o leisure_n to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n without_o instruction_n answ_n much_o may_v be_v do_v if_o all_o man_n do_v their_o best_a but_o 1._o the_o difficulty_n be_v such_o that_o the_o learned_a themselves_o be_v lamentable_o imperfect_a and_o unsatisfied_a as_o i_o shall_v further_o show_v 2._o though_o the_o vulgar_a can_v search_v out_o the_o truth_n without_o help_n yet_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o by_o help_n they_o come_v to_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o rest_v not_o in_o a_o humane_a belief_n alone_o especial_o when_o their_o teacher_n be_v of_o so_o many_o mind_n that_o they_o know_v not_o which_o of_o they_o to_o believe_v to_o learn_v the_o truth_n
in_o its_o proper_a evidence_n be_v very_o hard_a to_o they_o that_o have_v no_o more_o than_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n obj._n but_o what_o difficulty_n be_v there_o in_o these_o few_o precept_n that_o all_o man_n may_v not_o easy_o learn_v they_o thou_o shall_v love_v god_n above_o all_o and_o repent_v of_o sin_n and_o set_v thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o life_n to_o come_v sapientiam_fw-la and_o love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o etc._n etc._n answ_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o learning_n these_o word_n but_o 1._o there_o be_v great_a difficulty_n in_o learning_n to_o understand_v the_o sense_n and_o certain_a truth_n of_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o to_o know_v what_o god_n be_v so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o our_o obedience_n and_o love_n and_o to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v in_o he_o which_o be_v so_o amiable_a and_o to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o life_n to_o come_v and_o what_o it_o be_v and_o to_o know_v what_o be_v god_n will_n and_o so_o what_o be_v duty_n and_o what_o be_v the_o sin_n which_o we_o must_v repent_v of_o these_o be_v more_o difficult_a general_n be_v soon_o name_v but_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a understanding_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o practice_n 2._o and_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o see_v that_o certainty_n and_o attractive_a goodness_n in_o these_o thing_n as_o may_v draw_v the_o mind_n to_o the_o practical_a embracement_n of_o they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o other_o thing_n a_o obscure_a doubtful_a waver_a apprehension_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o change_v the_o heart_n and_o life_n §_o 4._o these_o difficulty_n in_o the_o mere_a natural_a way_n of_o revelation_n will_v fill_v the_o learned_a world_n with_o controversy_n and_o those_o controversy_n will_v breed_v and_o feed_v contention_n and_o eat_v out_o the_o heart_n of_o practical_a godliness_n and_o make_v all_o religion_n seem_v a_o uncertain_a or_o unnecessary_a thing_n this_o be_v undoubted_o prove_v 1._o in_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n 2._o and_o in_o all_o the_o world_n experience_n so_o numerous_a be_v the_o controversy_n among_o philosopher_n so_o various_a their_o sect_n so_o common_a their_o contention_n that_o the_o world_n despise_v they_o and_o all_o religion_n for_o their_o sake_n and_o look_v on_o most_o of_o they_o but_o as_o mountebank_n that_o set_v up_o for_o gain_n or_o to_o get_v disciple_n or_o to_o show_v their_o wit_n practical_a piety_n die_v in_o their_o hand_n obj._n this_o be_v a_o consequent_a not_o to_o be_v avoid_v because_o no_o way_n have_v so_o resolve_v difficulty_n as_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o controversy_n and_o sect_n answ_n certain_o clearness_n be_v more_o desirable_a than_o obscurity_n and_o concord_n and_o unity_n than_o division_n therefore_o it_o concern_v we_o to_o inquire_v how_o this_o mischief_n may_v be_v amend_v which_o be_v it_o that_o i_o be_o now_o about_o §_o 5._o these_o difficulty_n also_o make_v it_o so_o long_a a_o work_n to_o learn_v god_n will_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n only_o that_o the_o time_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o oft_o of_o their_o life_n be_v slip_v away_o before_o man_n can_v come_v to_o know_v why_o they_o live_v it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n that_o cause_v all_o these_o inconvenience_n but_o it_o be_v as_o true_a s●n._n that_o their_o disease_n do_v need_v a_o cure_n for_o which_o it_o concern_v they_o to_o seek_v out_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v hold_v upon_o a_o constant_a uncertainty_n and_o no_o man_n be_v sure_a to_o live_v another_o year_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o precept_n so_o plain_a as_o may_v be_v easy_o and_o quick_o learn_v that_o we_o may_v be_v always_o ready_a if_o death_n shall_v call_v we_o to_o a_o account_n i_o confess_v that_o what_o i_o have_v transcribe_v from_o nature_n be_v very_o plain_a there_o to_o one_o that_o already_o understand_v it_o but_o whether_o the_o disease_a blindness_n of_o the_o world_n do_v not_o need_v yet_o something_o plain_o let_v experience_n determine_v §_o 6._o that_o which_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o sound_a understanding_n and_o will_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o a_o darken_a disease_a mind_n and_o heart_n such_o as_o experience_n tell_v we_o be_v find_v throughout_o the_o world_n to_o true_a reason_n which_o be_v at_o liberty_n and_o not_o enthrall_v by_o sensuality_n and_o error_n the_o light_n of_o nature_n may_v have_v a_o sufficiency_n to_o lead_v man_n up_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o a_o life_n of_o holiness_n but_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o world_n be_v darken_v and_o captivate_v by_o sensuality_n and_o that_o few_o man_n can_v well_o use_v their_o own_o faculty_n and_o such_o eye_n need_v spectacle_n such_o cripple_n need_n crutch_n yea_o such_o disease_n call_v for_o a_o physician_n prove_v once_o that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o disease_v and_o then_o we_o will_v confess_v that_o their_o natural_a food_n may_v serve_v the_o turn_n without_o any_o other_o diet_n or_o physic_n §_o 7._o when_o i_o have_v by_o natural_a reason_n silence_v all_o my_o doubt_n about_o the_o life_n to_o come_v i_o yet_o find_v in_o myself_o a_o uncouth_a unsatisfactory_a kind_n of_o apprehension_n of_o my_o future_a state_n till_o i_o look_v to_o supernatural_a evidence_n which_o i_o perceive_v be_v from_o a_o double_a cause_n 1._o because_o a_o soul_n in_o flesh_n will_v fain_o have_v such_o apprehension_n as_o participate_v of_o sense_n 2._o and_o we_o be_v so_o conscious_a of_o our_o ignorance_n that_o we_o be_v apt_a still_o to_o suspect_v our_o own_o understanding_n even_o when_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o the_o conclusion_n what_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n do_v so_o full_o satisfy_v my_o reason_n as_o that_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o it_o which_o i_o can_v easy_o discern_v to_o be_v unsound_a and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o when_o i_o think_v of_o another_o world_n by_o the_o help_n of_o this_o natural_a light_n alone_o i_o be_o rather_o amaze_v than_o satisfy_v and_o be_o ready_a to_o think_v all_o this_o seem_v true_a and_o i_o have_v nothing_o of_o weight_n to_o say_v against_o it_o but_o alas_o how_o poor_a and_o uncertain_a a_o thing_n be_v man_n understanding_n how_o many_o be_v deceive_v in_o thing_n that_o seem_v as_o undeniable_a to_o they_o how_o know_v i_o what_o one_o particular_a may_v be_v unseen_a by_o i_o which_o will_v change_v my_o judgement_n and_o better_o inform_v i_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o i_o can_v but_o see_v the_o world_n which_o i_o believe_v or_o at_o least_o but_o speak_v with_o one_o who_o have_v be_v there_o or_o give_v i_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o his_o veracity_n it_o will_v much_o confirm_v i_o sense_n have_v get_v so_o much_o mastery_n in_o the_o soul_n that_o we_o have_v much_o ado_n to_o take_v any_o apprehension_n for_o sure_a and_o satisfactory_a which_o have_v not_o some_o great_a correspondency_n with_o sense_n this_o be_v not_o well_o but_o it_o be_v a_o disease_n which_o show_v the_o need_n of_o a_o physician_n and_o of_o some_o other_o satisfy_v light_n §_o 8._o while_o we_o be_v thus_o scopt_v in_o our_o way_n by_o tediousness_n difficulty_n and_o a_o subjective_a uncertainty_n about_o the_o end_n and_o duty_n of_o man_n the_o flesh_n be_v still_o active_a and_o sin_n increase_v and_o get_v advantage_n and_o present_a thing_n be_v still_o in_o their_o deceive_a power_n and_o so_o the_o soul_n grow_v worse_a and_o worse_o ●9_n §_o 9_o the_o soul_n be_v thus_o vitiate_v and_o pervert_v by_o sin_n be_v so_o partial_a slothful_a negligent_a unwilling_a superficial_a deceitful_a and_o ●us●d●n_o in_o its_o study_n that_o if_o the_o evidence_n of_o life_n everlasting_a bes●_n and_o clear_a and_o satisfy_v to_o other_o it_o will_v overlook_a they_o or_o not_o perceive_v their_o certainty_n §_o 10._o though_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a by_o common_a experience_n that_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v lamentable_o deprave_v and_o that_o sin_n do_v overspread_v the_o world_n yet_o how_o it_o enter_v and_o when_o or_o which_o of_o our_o progenitor_n be_v the_o first_o transgressor_n and_o cause_n no_o natural_a light_n do_v full_o or_o satisfactory_o acquaint_v i_o §_o 11._o and_o though_o nature_n tell_v i_o that_o god_n can_v damn_v or_o hate_v a_o soul_n that_o true_o love_v he_o and_o be_v sanctify_v yet_o do_v it_o not_o show_v i_o a_o mean_n that_o be_v likely_a considerable_o to_o prevail_v to_o sanctify_v soul_n and_o turn_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o present_a transitory_a thing_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o life_n eternal_a though_o there_o be_v in_o nature_n the_o discovery_n of_o sufficient_a reason_n and_o motive_n to_o do_v it_o fast_o where_o reason_n be_v not_o
among_o themselves_o who_o be_v his_o disciple_n how_o to_o mortify_v sin_n and_o to_o contemn_v the_o wealth_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o flesh_n its_o hurtful_a desire_n and_o lust_n and_o how_o to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o for_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n to_o tell_v we_o what_o shall_v be_v after_o death_n how_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v judge_v and_o what_o shall_v become_v both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o everlasting_a but_o his_o great_a work_n be_v by_o the_o great_a demonstration_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n to_o lose_a mankind_n in_o their_o free_a pardon_n and_o offer_a salvation_n to_o win_v up_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o raise_v their_o hope_n and_o desire_v up_o to_o that_o bless_a life_n where_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o glory_n and_o love_v he_o and_o be_v belove_v by_o he_o for_o ever_o at_o last_o when_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n of_o his_o ministration_n in_o the_o flesh_n he_o tell_v his_o disciple_n of_o his_o approach_a suffer_v and_o resurrection_n and_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o he_o command_v they_o to_o use_v for_o the_o renew_n of_o their_o covenant_n with_o he_o and_o remembrance_n of_o he_o 23._o and_o for_o the_o maintain_n and_o signify_v their_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o with_o each_o other_o after_o this_o his_o time_n be_v come_v the_o jew_n apprehend_v he_o and_o though_o upon_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n to_o show_v his_o power_n they_o fall_v all_o to_o the_o ground_n yet_o do_v they_o rise_v again_o and_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o and_o bring_v he_o before_o pilate_n the_o roman_a governor_n and_o vehement_o urge_v he_o to_o crucify_v he_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o conscience_n they_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n for_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o impiety_n for_o say_v destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v rebuild_v it_o he_o mean_v his_o body_n and_o of_o treason_n against_o caesar_n for_o call_v himself_o a_o king_n though_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o worldly_a but_o spiritual_a hereupon_o they_o condemn_v he_o and_o clothe_v he_o in_o purple_a like_o a_o king_n in_o scorn_n and_o set_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n on_o his_o head_n and_o put_v a_o reed_n for_o a_o sceptre_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o lead_v he_o about_o to_o be_v a_o derision_n they_o cover_v his_o eye_n and_o smite_v he_o and_o buffet_v he_o and_o bid_v he_o tell_v who_o strike_v he_o at_o last_o they_o nail_v he_o upon_o a_o cross_n and_o put_v he_o to_o open_a shame_n and_o death_n betwixt_o two_o malefactor_n of_o who_o one_o of_o they_o revile_v he_o and_o the_o other_o believe_v on_o he_o they_o give_v he_o gall_n and_o vinegar_n to_o drink_v the_o soldier_n pierce_v his_o side_n with_o a_o spear_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a all_o his_o disciple_n forsake_v he_o and_o flee_v peter_n have_v before_o deny_v thrice_o that_o ever_o he_o know_v he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a the_o earth_n tremble_v the_o rock_n and_o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n rend_v and_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n though_o their_o be_v no_o natural_a eclipse_n which_o make_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o soldier_n say_v very_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v take_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n and_o lay_v in_o a_o stone-sepulchre_n they_o set_v a_o guard_n of_o soldier_n to_o watch_v the_o grave_n have_v a_o stone_n upon_o it_o which_o they_o seal_v because_o he_o have_v foretold_v they_o that_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o evangelist_n on_o the_o morning_n of_o the_o three_o day_n be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n a_o angel_n terrify_v the_o soldier_n and_o roll_v away_o the_o stone_n and_o sit_v upon_o it_o and_o when_o his_o disciple_n come_v they_o find_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o there_o and_o the_o angel_n tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v and_o will_v appear_v to_o they_o according_o he_o oft_o appear_v to_o they_o sometime_o as_o they_o walk_v by_o the_o way_n and_o once_o as_o they_o be_v fish_v but_o usual_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o thomas_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o be_v absent_a at_o his_o first_o appearance_n to_o the_o rest_n tell_v they_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o unless_o he_o see_v the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o may_v put_v his_o finger_n into_o his_o wound_a side_n the_o next_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v jesus_n appear_v to_o they_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v and_o call_v thomas_n and_o bid_v he_o put_v his_o finger_n into_o his_o side_n and_o view_v the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o not_o be_v faithless_a but_o believe_v after_o this_o he_o oft_o appear_v to_o they_o and_o once_o to_o above_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o he_o earnest_o press_v peter_n to_o show_v the_o love_n that_o he_o bear_v to_o himself_o by_o the_o feed_n of_o his_o flock_n he_o instruct_v his_o apostle_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o employment_n he_o give_v they_o commission_n to_o go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o give_v they_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o make_v they_o the_o ruler_n of_o his_o church_n require_v they_o by_o baptism_n solemn_o to_o enter_v all_o into_o his_o covenant_n who_o consent_n to_o the_o term_n of_o it_o and_o to_o assure_v they_o of_o pardon_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o of_o salvation_n if_o they_o persevere_v he_o require_v they_o to_o teach_v his_o disciple_n to_o observe_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v command_v they_o and_o promise_v they_o that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n and_o powerful_a defence_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o when_o he_o have_v be_v see_v of_o they_o forty_o day_n speak_v of_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v assemble_v with_o they_o he_o command_v they_o not_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o wait_v till_o the_o holy_a spirit_n come_v down_o upon_o they_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v they_o but_o they_o be_v taint_v with_o some_o of_o the_o worldly_a expectation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o think_v that_o he_o who_o can_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a will_v sure_o now_o make_v himself_o and_o his_o follower_n glorious_a in_o the_o world_n begin_v to_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o will_v at_o this_o time_n restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n but_o he_o answer_v they_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o to_o know_v the_o time_n or_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n but_o you_o shall_v receive_v power_n after_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v come_v upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n to_o i_o both_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o judea_n and_o samaria_n and_o to_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o while_o they_o behold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o and_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n and_o while_o they_o look_v steadfast_o towards_o heaven_n as_o he_o go_v up_o two_o man_n stand_v by_o they_o in_o white_a apparel_n and_o say_v why_o gaze_v you_o up_o into_o heaven_n this_o same_o jesus_n which_o be_v take_v up_o from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n upon_o this_o they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o continue_v together_o 2._o till_o ten_o day_n after_o as_o they_o be_v all_o together_o both_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n sudden_o there_o come_v a_o sound_n from_o heaven_n as_o of_o a_o rush_v mighty_a wind_n and_o the_o likeness_n of_o fiery_a cleave_a tongue_n sit_v on_o they_o all_o and_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o begin_v to_o speak_v in_o other_o language_n as_o the_o spirit_n give_v they_o utterance_n by_o this_o they_o be_v enable_v both_o to_o preach_v to_o people_n of_o several_a language_n and_o to_o work_v other_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n so_o that_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o christ_n send_v down_o upon_o believer_n be_v his_o great_a witness_n and_o agent_n in_o the_o world_n and_o procure_v the_o belief_n and_o entertainment_n of_o the_o gospel_n wheresoever_o it_o come_v for_o by_o this_o extraordinary_a reception_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v much_o fullier_n instruct_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n than_o
they_o be_v before_o notwithstanding_o their_o long_a converse_n with_o christ_n in_o person_n it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o illuminate_v they_o by_o supernatural_a infusion_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v no_o contrive_a design_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v enable_v to_o preach_v the_o word_n with_o power_n and_o by_o this_o spirit_n be_v infallible_o guide_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o work_n of_o their_o commission_n to_o settle_v christ_n church_n in_o a_o holy_a order_n and_o to_o leave_v on_o record_n the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v command_v they_o to_o teach_v also_o they_o themselves_o do_v heal_v the_o sick_a and_o cast_v out_o devil_n and_o prophesy_v and_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o their_o hand_n the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n be_v ordinary_o give_v to_o other_o that_o believe_v so_o that_o christian_n have_v all_o one_o gift_n or_o other_o of_o that_o spirit_n by_o which_o they_o convince_v and_o convert_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o short_a time_n and_o all_o that_o be_v sincere_a have_v the_o gift_n of_o sanctification_n and_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o by_o baptismal_a water_n and_o have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v abroad_o in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v they_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n with_o mortification_n contempt_n of_o the_o world_n self-denial_n patience_n and_o love_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o all_o man_n be_v the_o constant_a badge_n of_o all_o christ_n follower_n 3_o the_o first_o sermon_n that_o peter_n preach_v do_v convert_v three_o thousand_o of_o those_o sinful_a jew_n that_o have_v crucify_v christ_n and_o after_o that_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o more_o be_v convert_v one_o of_o their_o bloody_a persecutor_n saul_n a_o pharisee_fw-mi that_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o murderer_n of_o the_o first_o martyr_n stephen_n 9_o and_o have_v hale_v many_o of_o they_o to_o prison_n as_o he_o be_v go_v on_o this_o business_n be_v strike_v down_o by_o the_o highway_n a_o light_n from_o heaven_n shine_v round_o about_o he_o and_o a_o voice_n say_v to_o he_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o he_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v it_o be_v hard_a for_o thou_o to_o kick_v against_o the_o prick_n and_o he_o tremble_v and_o astonish_v say_v lord_n what_o will_v thou_o have_v i_o to_o do_v and_o the_o lord_n say_v arise_v and_o go_v into_o the_o city_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v tell_v thou_o what_o thou_o must_v do_v and_o the_o man_n that_o journey_v with_o he_o stand_v speechless_a hear_v a_o voice_n but_o see_v no_o man_n and_o so_o saul_n be_v lead_v blind_a to_o damascus_n tot_fw-la where_o one_o ananias_n have_v a_o vision_n command_v he_o to_o baptise_v he_o and_o his_o eye_n be_v open_v this_o convert_v call_v paul_n do_v henceforward_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n from_o country_n to_o country_n in_o syria_n in_o asia_n at_o rome_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o marvellous_a unwearied_a labour_n and_o suffering_n abuse_n and_o imprisonment_n convert_v multitude_n and_o plant_v church_n in_o many_o great_a city_n and_o country_n and_o work_a abundance_n of_o miracle_n where_o he_o go_v his_o history_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v also_o many_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o rome_n to_o corinth_n galatia_n ephesus_n philippi_n coloss_n thessalonica_n to_o timothy_n to_o titus_n and_o to_o philemon_n and_o the_o hebrew_n as_o be_v suppose_v there_o be_v also_o the_o epistle_n of_o peter_n james_n john_n and_o judas_n with_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n contain_v many_o mysterious_a prophecy_n a_o eunuch_n who_o be_v of_o great_a power_n under_o the_o queen_n of_o ethiopia_n be_v convert_v by_o philip_n and_o carry_v the_o gospel_n into_o his_o country_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o disciple_n carry_v it_o abroad_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n especial_o in_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o though_o every_o where_o they_o meet_v with_o opposition_n and_o persecution_n yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v in_o their_o holiness_n language_n and_o miracle_n they_o prevail_v and_o plant_v abundance_n of_o church_n of_o which_o the_o most_o populous_a be_v at_o jerusalem_n antioch_n rome_n and_o alexandria_n and_o though_o they_o be_v all_o disperse_v abroad_o the_o world_n and_o out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o mutual_a converse_n yet_o do_v they_o never_o disagree_v in_o their_o doctrine_n in_o the_o small_a point_n but_o proceed_v through_o suffering_n in_o unity_n and_o holiness_n in_o the_o work_n of_o save_v soul_n till_o most_o of_o they_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n have_v leave_v the_o church_n under_o the_o government_n of_o their_o several_a pastor_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o abstract_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 14._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o article_n follow_v consist_v of_o three_o general_a head_n i._o thing_n to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v ii_o thing_n to_o be_v will_v and_o desire_v and_o hope_v iii_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v 145.9_o i._o 1._o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n in_o essence_n in_o three_o essential_a principle_n power_n understanding_n and_o will_n or_o omnipotency_n omniscience_n and_o goodness_n in_o three_o subsistence_n or_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o be_v a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o be_v most_o simple_a incorruptible_a immortal_a impassionate_a invisible_a intactible_a etc._n etc._n and_o be_v indivisible_a eternal_a immense_a necessary_a independent_a self-sufficient_a immutable_a absolute_a and_o infinite_a in_o all_o perfection_n the_o principal_a efficient_a dirigent_a and_o final_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o world_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o and_o therefore_o our_o absolute_a owner_n symbolis_fw-la or_o supreme_a ruler_n and_o our_o total_a benefactor_n and_o chief_z good_a and_o end_n 2._o god_n make_v man_n for_o himself_o not_o to_o supply_v any_o want_n of_o his_o own_o but_o for_o the_o please_a of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o love_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o perfection_n shine_v forth_o in_o his_o work_n in_o his_o own_o image_n that_o be_v with_o vital_a power_n understanding_n and_o freewill_n able_a wise_a and_o good_a with_o dominion_n over_o the_o inferior_a creature_n as_o be_v in_o subordination_n to_o god_n their_o owner_n their_o governor_n and_o their_o benefactor_n and_o end_n and_o he_o bind_v he_o by_o the_o law_n of_o his_o nature_n to_o adhere_v to_o god_n his_o maker_n by_o resignation_n devotion_n and_o submission_n to_o he_o as_o his_o owner_n by_o believe_v honour_v and_o obey_v he_o as_o his_o ruler_n and_o by_o love_v he_o trust_v and_o seek_v he_o delight_v in_o he_o thanksgiving_n to_o he_o and_o praise_v he_o as_o his_o grand_a benefactor_n chief_a good_a and_o ultimate_a end_n to_o exercise_v charity_n and_o justice_n to_o each_o other_o and_o to_o govern_v all_o his_o inferior_a faculty_n by_o reason_n according_a to_o his_o maker_n will_n that_o he_o so_o may_v please_v he_o and_o be_v happy_a in_o his_o love_n and_o to_o try_v he_o he_o particular_o forbid_v he_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n 3._o 4.12_o man_n be_v tempt_v by_o satan_n to_o break_v this_o law_n of_o god_n do_v believe_v the_o tempter_n who_o promise_v he_o impunity_n and_o advancement_n in_o knowledge_n and_o who_o accuse_v god_n as_o false_a in_o his_o threaten_n and_o as_o envy_v man_n this_o great_a advancement_n and_o so_o by_o wilful_a sin_v against_o he_o he_o fall_v from_o god_n and_o his_o uprightness_n and_o happiness_n under_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n the_o penalty_n of_o his_o law_n and_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o hence_o we_o be_v all_o conceive_v in_o sin_n averse_a to_o good_a and_o prone_a to_o evil_a and_o condemnation_n be_v pass_v upon_o all_o and_o no_o mere_a creature_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o 4._o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n 5.12_o that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a son_n to_o be_v their_o redeemer_n who_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o true_o god_n and_o one_o in_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n do_v assume_v our_o nature_n and_o become_v man_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o bear_v of_o she_o and_o call_v jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v holy_a and_o without_o all_o sin_n do_v conquer_v the_o tempter_n and_o the_o world_n fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n he_o enact_v and_o preach_v the_o law_n or_o
will_v not_o have_v be_v a_o full_a exemplification_n of_o his_o doctrine_n nor_o a_o perfect_a revelation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o world_n example_n bring_v doctrine_n near_o our_o sense_n and_o thereby_o make_v it_o more_o clear_a and_o powerful_a 18._o §_o 20._o it_o be_v the_o undertake_a office_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o send_v the_o holy_a spirit_n into_o believer_n mind_n and_o to_o write_v out_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o law_n upon_o their_o heart_n and_o give_v they_o such_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a inclination_n that_o it_o may_v become_v as_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a law_n unto_o they_o and_o they_o obey_v it_o with_o love_n facility_n and_o delight_n though_o not_o in_o perfection_n till_o they_o arrive_v at_o the_o state_n of_o perfection_n so_o much_o to_o show_v what_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v chap._n iu._n of_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v understand_v the_o matter_n and_o word_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n before_o i_o proceed_v any_o further_a ambros_n i_o think_v it_o meet_v to_o pass_v a_o judgement_n upon_o the_o nature_n temperament_n constitution_n and_o property_n of_o it_o and_o therein_o i_o find_v that_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a preparative_n to_o belief_n §_o 1._o and_o first_o i_o find_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o holy_a and_o spiritual_a religion_n resolve_v into_o the_o most_o excellent_a principle_n and_o end_n glorify_v god_n and_o humble_v man_n and_o teach_v we_o the_o most_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a life_n in_o the_o love_n and_o patient_a service_n of_o our_o creator_n 1._o it_o be_v most_o holy_a for_o it_o call_v we_o up_o entire_o unto_o god_n 239._o and_o consist_v in_o our_o absolute_a dedication_n and_o devotedness_n to_o he_o 2._o it_o be_v most_o spiritual_a lead_v we_o from_o thing_n carnal_a and_o terrene_a and_o be_v principal_o about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o place_v all_o our_o felicity_n in_o thing_n spiritual_a and_o not_o in_o fleshly_a pleasure_n with_o the_o epicurean_o and_o mahometan_n it_o teach_v we_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n and_o not_o either_o irrational_o toyish_o or_o irreverent_o and_o it_o direct_v our_o life_n to_o a_o daily_a converse_n with_o god_n in_o holiness_n 3._o the_o principle_n of_o it_o be_v the_o three_o essentiality_n of_o god_n in_o unity_n viz._n the_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o the_o three_o grand_a relation_n of_o god_n to_o man_n as_o found_v in_o his_o three_o most_o famous_a work_n viz_o as_o our_o creator_n our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o regenerater_n or_o sanctifier_n and_o the_o three_o great_a relation_n arise_v from_o creation_n and_o also_o from_o redemption_n viz._n as_o he_o be_v our_o owner_n our_o ruler_n and_o our_o benefactor_n or_o chief_a good_a and_o end_n 4._o the_o end_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o find_v be_v proximate_o the_o save_n of_o man_n from_o satan_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n the_o sanctify_v they_o to_o god_n and_o purify_n they_o from_o sin_n the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o everlasting_a happiness_n of_o their_o soul_n in_o the_o please_a and_o fruition_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v but_o the_o redeem_n we_o from_o our_o carnal_a self_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o the_o love_n and_o service_n of_o our_o creator_n 5._o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o honourable_o of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o perfection_n in_o the_o language_n of_o poor_a mortal_n than_o what_o the_o christian_a religion_n speak_v of_o he_o 6._o and_o no_o religion_n so_o much_o humble_v man_n by_o open_v the_o malignity_n both_o of_o his_o original_n and_o actual_a sin_n and_o declare_v the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n against_o it_o 7._o it_o teach_v we_o who_o once_o live_v as_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n to_o live_v whole_o unto_o god_n christ_n and_o to_o make_v nothing_o of_o all_o the_o world_n in_o comparison_n of_o he_o 8._o and_o it_o teach_v we_o to_o live_v upon_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n and_o fetch_v our_o motive_n and_o our_o comfort_n from_o it_o §_o 2._o i_o find_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o most_o pure_a and_o clean_o and_o utter_o opposite_a to_o all_o that_o be_v evil_a there_o be_v no_o virtue_n which_o it_o commend_v not_o nor_o duty_n which_o it_o command_v not_o nor_o vice_n which_o it_o condemn_v not_o nor_o sin_n which_o it_o forbid_v not_o the_o chief_a thing_n in_o it_o which_o occasion_v the_o rebellion_n and_o displeasure_n of_o the_o world_n against_o it_o be_v the_o purity_n and_o goodness_n of_o it_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o sensual_a nature_n and_o as_o physic_n to_o their_o licentious_a life_n will_v it_o indulge_v their_o vice_n and_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o sin_n they_o can_v endure_v it_o §_o 3._o particular_o it_o most_o vehement_o condemn_v the_o grand_a vice_n of_o pride_n worldliness_n and_o sensuality_n and_o all_o their_o pollute_a and_o pernicious_a fruit_n 1._o no_o religion_n do_v so_o much_o to_o teach_v man_n humility_n and_o make_v pride_n appear_v a_o odious_a thing_n it_o open_v the_o malignity_n of_o it_o as_o it_o lift_v up_o the_o mind_n against_o god_n or_o man_n it_o condemn_v it_o as_o satan_n image_n it_o give_v we_o a_o multitude_n of_o humble_v precept_n and_o motive_n and_o second_v they_o all_o with_o the_o strange_a example_n of_o condescension_n and_o lowliness_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v ever_o present_v to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n whereas_o i_o find_v even_o in_o the_o famous_a of_o the_o roman_a heathen_n that_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o pride_n be_v take_v for_o a_o virtue_n and_o man_n be_v instruct_v and_o exhort_v to_o be_v proud_a under_o pretence_n of_o maintain_v and_o vindicate_v their_o honour_n and_o true_a humility_n be_v take_v for_o disgraceful_a baseness_n and_o man_n be_v drive_v from_o it_o by_o the_o scorn_n not_o only_o of_o the_o vulgar_a but_o of_o philosopher_n themselves_o 2._o and_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n that_o be_v fit_v so_o much_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o worldliness_n or_o of_o the_o love_n of_o riches_n as_o christianity_n be_v charitat_fw-la for_o it_o teach_v man_n most_o effectual_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n it_o appoint_v they_o a_o holy_a life_n so_o hateful_a to_o worldly_a man_n as_o will_v occasion_v they_o to_o feel_v the_o vexation_n of_o the_o world_n it_o open_v to_o they_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o life_n so_o much_o better_a as_o may_v teach_v they_o to_o take_v all_o the_o wealth_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n for_o a_o shadow_n a_o feather_n or_o a_o dream_n it_o condemn_v worldly_a love_n as_o the_o sin_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o certain_a mark_n of_o a_o drossy_a unsanctified_a miserable_a soul_n it_o set_v before_o we_o such_o a_o example_n of_o christ_n as_o must_v needs_o shame_v worldliness_n with_o all_o true_a believer_n 3._o and_o for_o sensuality_n it_o open_v the_o shame_n of_o its_o beastiality_n and_o make_v the_o carnal_a mind_n and_o life_n to_o be_v enmity_n to_o god_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o that_o spiritual_a mind_n and_o life_n which_o be_v the_o property_n of_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v it_o strict_o and_o vehement_o condemn_v all_o gluttony_n and_o excess_n of_o drink_n all_o ryotting_a and_o time-wasting_a needless_a sport_n all_o fornication_n and_o ribald_a talk_n and_o wanton_a carriage_n word_n or_o thought_n whereas_o i_o find_v among_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n that_o inordinate_a sensuality_n be_v much_o indulge_v excess_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v make_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a blame_n time-wasting_a play_n be_v as_o little_o accuse_v as_o if_o man_n have_v no_o great_a matter_n to_o do_v in_o the_o world_n than_o to_o pass_v away_o time_n in_o some_o sensual_a or_o fantastical_a delight_n either_o by_o fornication_n or_o many_o wife_n at_o once_o their_o lust_n be_v gratify_v and_o so_o their_o mind_n be_v debase_v pollute_a and_o call_v down_o and_o make_v unfit_a for_o spiritual_a contemplation_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n from_o whence_o no_o doubt_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v so_o dark_a about_o thing_n spiritual_a and_o divine_a and_o so_o overspread_v with_o error_n about_o many_o plain_a and_o necessary_a thing_n §_o 4._o there_o be_v no_o religion_n which_o so_o notable_o detect_v and_o disgrace_v the_o sin_n of_o selfishness_n nor_o so_o effectual_o teach_v self-denial_n as_o the_o christian_a religion_n do_v it_o make_v man_n understand_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o corrupt_a deprave_a state_n that_o it_o be_v a_o fall_n from_o god_n to_o self_n and_o that_o his_o recovery_n lie_v in_o return_v from_o self_n to_o god._n it_o show_v he_o how_o selfishness_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o division_n enmity_n
like_o have_v more_o noble_a and_o bless_a inhabitant_n look_v to_o they_o if_o you_o will_v see_v his_o love_n in_o its_o most_o glorious_a demonstration_n justice_n also_o must_v be_v demonstrate_v if_o man_n will_v sin_v and_o if_o hell_n be_v quite_o forsake_v and_o earth_n which_o be_v next_o it_o be_v partly_o forsake_v of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n for_o all_o that_o god_n may_v glorious_o demonstrate_v his_o love_n to_o a_o thousand_o thousand-fold_n more_o subject_n of_o the_o noble_a region_n than_o he_o do_v demonstrate_v his_o justice_n on_o in_o hell_n or_o earth_n 263._o but_o these_o two_o thing_n i_o gather_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o my_o faith_n 1._o that_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o the_o world_n be_v such_o that_o it_o groan_v for_o a_o saviour_n and_o when_o i_o hear_v of_o a_o physician_n send_v from_o heaven_n i_o easy_o believe_v it_o when_o i_o see_v the_o woeful_a world_n mortal_o disease_v and_o gasp_v in_o its_o deep_a distress_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o world_n be_v visible_o so_o suitable_a to_o the_o whole_a office_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o i_o be_o drive_v to_o think_v that_o if_o god_n have_v mercy_n for_o it_o some_o physician_n and_o extraordinary_a help_n shall_v be_v afford_v it_o and_o when_o i_o see_v none_o else_o but_o jesus_n christ_n who_o reason_n will_v allow_v i_o to_o believe_v be_v that_o physician_n it_o somewhat_o prepare_v my_o mind_n to_o look_v towards_o he_o with_o hope_n 2._o and_o also_o the_o evil_a of_o this_o present_a world_n be_v very_o suitable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o settle_v we_o here_o in_o a_o state_n of_o prosperity_n nor_o to_o make_v the_o world_n our_o rest_n or_o portion_n but_o to_o save_v we_o from_o it_o as_o our_o enemy_n and_o calamity_n our_o danger_n and_o our_o wilderness_n and_o trouble_n and_o to_o bring_v up_o our_o heart_n first_o and_o then_o ourselves_o to_o a_o better_a world_n which_o he_o call_v we_o to_o seek_v and_o to_o make_v sure_a of_o whereas_o i_o find_v that_o most_o other_o religion_n though_o they_o say_v something_o of_o a_o life_n hereafter_o yet_o lead_v man_n to_o look_v for_o most_o or_o much_o of_o their_o felicity_n here_o as_o consist_v in_o the_o fruition_n of_o this_o world_n which_o experience_n tell_v i_o be_v so_o miserable_a §_o 3._o moreover_o i_o find_v that_o the_o law_n of_o entire_a nature_n be_v no_o more_o suitable_a to_o nature_n in_o its_o integrity_n than_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n reveal_v by_o christ_n be_v suitable_a to_o we_o in_o our_o lapse_v state_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o nature-lapsed_n and_o restorable_a naturae_fw-la lapsae_fw-la restaurandae_fw-la nature_n entire_a and_o nature_n deprave_v perfect_o must_v have_v the_o same_o pattern_n and_o rule_v of_o perfection_n ultimate_o to_o be_v conform_v to_o because_o lapse_v man_n must_v seek_v to_o return_v to_o his_o integrity_n but_o lapse_v or_o corrupt_v man_n do_v moreover_o need_v another_o law_n which_o shall_v first_o tend_v to_o his_o restoration_n from_o that_o lose_a and_o miserable_a state_n and_o it_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a to_o man_n in_o innocency_n to_o have_v a_o suitable_a law_n for_o his_o preservation_n and_o confirmation_n than_o it_o be_v to_o man_n in_o sin_n and_o guilt_n to_o have_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o his_o pardon_n and_o recovery_n and_o a_o course_n of_o mean_n prescribe_v he_o for_o the_o heal_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o for_o the_o escape_n of_o the_o stroke_n of_o justice_n the_o follow_a particular_n further_o open_a this_o §_o 4._o it_o seem_v very_o congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o as_o monarchy_n be_v the_o perfect_a sort_n of_o government_n which_o it_o be_v probable_a be_v even_o among_o the_o angel_n so_o mankind_n shall_v have_v one_o universal_a head_n or_o monarch_n over_o they_o kingdom_n have_v their_o several_a monarch_n but_o there_o be_v sure_o a_o universal_a monarch_n over_o they_o all_o we_o know_v that_o god_n be_v the_o primary_n sovereign_a but_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a to_o nature_n that_o there_o be_v a_o subordinate_a sovereign_n or_o general_a administrator_n under_o he_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o scripture_n that_o speak_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o throne_n and_o dominion_n among_o the_o happy_a spirit_n and_o that_o talk_v of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v prince_n of_o several_a kingdom_n dan._n 10._o but_o even_o the_o philosopher_n and_o most_o idolater_n have_v from_o this_o apprehension_n be_v draw_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o such_o deity_n as_o a_o inferior_a kind_n of_o deity_n and_o if_o man_n must_v have_v a_o subordinate_a universal_a king_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o it_o be_v one_o that_o be_v also_o man_n as_o angel_n and_o devil_n have_v principal_n of_o their_o own_o sort_n and_o nature_n and_o not_o of_o other_o §_o 5._o it_o seem_v congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o this_o head_n be_v one_o that_o be_v fit_v to_o be_v our_o captain_n general_n himself_o to_o lead_v we_o by_o conduct_n precept_n and_o example_n in_o our_o warfare_n against_o those_o devil_n who_o also_o be_v say_v to_o have_v their_o prince_n and_o general_n as_o devil_n fight_v against_o we_o under_o a_o prince_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o be_v it_o congruous_a that_o we_o fight_v against_o they_o under_o a_o prince_n of_o our_o own_o nature_n who_o have_v himself_o first_o conquer_v he_o and_o will_v go_v on_o before_o we_o in_o the_o fight_n §_o 6._o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o lapse_v man_n under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o desert_n of_o punishment_n who_o be_v unable_a to_o deliver_v himself_o and_o unworthy_a of_o immediate_a access_n to_o god_n shall_v have_v a_o mediator_n for_o his_o restoration_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n if_o any_o be_v find_v fit_a for_o so_o high_a a_o office_n §_o 7._o and_o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o this_o mediator_n be_v one_o in_o who_o god_n do_v condescend_v to_o man_n and_o one_o in_o who_o man_n may_v be_v encourage_v to_o ascend_v to_o god_n as_o to_o one_o that_o will_v forgive_v and_o save_v he_o and_o one_o that_o have_v make_v himself_o know_v to_o man_n and_o also_o have_v free_a access_n to_o god_n §_o 8._o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o lapse_v guilty_a darken_a sinner_n that_o know_v so_o little_a of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o will_n and_o of_o their_o own_o concernment_n and_o of_o the_o other_o world_n shall_v have_v a_o teacher_n send_v from_o heaven_n of_o great_a authority_n and_o credit_n than_o a_o angel_n to_o acquaint_v we_o with_o god_n and_o his_o will_n and_o the_o life_n that_o we_o be_v go_v to_o more_o certain_o and_o full_o than_o will_v be_v do_v by_o nature_n only_o heaven_n that_o this_o be_v very_o desirable_a no_o man_n can_v doubt_v how_o glad_o woo_a man_n receive_v a_o letter_n or_o book_n that_o drop_v from_o heaven_n or_o a_o angel_n that_o be_v send_v thence_o to_o tell_v they_o what_o be_v there_o and_o what_o they_o must_v for_o ever_o trust_v to_o yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o one_o of_o their_o old_a acquaintance_n from_o the_o dead_a but_o all_o this_o will_v leave_v they_o in_o uncertainty_n still_o and_o they_o will_v be_v doubtful_a of_o the_o credit_n and_o truth_n of_o any_o such_o a_o messenger_n and_o therefore_o to_o have_v one_o of_o full_a authority_n that_o shall_v confirm_v his_o word_n by_o unquestionable_a attestation_n will_v very_o much_o satisfy_v man_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o nature_n itself_o reveal_v to_o we_o a_o life_n of_o retribution_n after_o this_o and_o that_o immortality_n of_o soul_n may_v be_v prove_v without_o scripture_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v still_o a_o darkness_n and_o unacquaintedness_n and_o consequent_o a_o doubt_v and_o question_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o upon_o a_o carnal_a mind_n and_o it_o will_v great_o satisfy_v such_o if_o beside_o mere_a reason_n they_o have_v some_o proof_n which_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o a_o mind_n in_o flesh_n and_o may_v either_o speak_v with_o some_o credible_a messenger_n who_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o full_o know_v all_o these_o matter_n or_o at_o least_o may_v be_v certain_o inform_v of_o his_o report_n and_o indeed_o to_o man_n that_o be_v fall_v into_o such_o a_o dark_a depravedness_n of_o reason_n and_o such_o stranger_n to_o god_n and_o heaven_n as_o mankind_n be_v senec._n it_o be_v become_v needful_a that_o they_o have_v more_o than_o natural_a light_n to_o show_v they_o the_o nature_n the_o excellency_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o happiness_n to_o come_v or_o else_o they_o be_v never_o like_o so_o to_o love_n and_o seek_v it_o and_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o
earthly_a thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o they_o that_o will_v attain_v it_o for_o few_o man_n will_v seek_v with_o their_o utmost_a labour_n or_o let_v go_v all_o other_o thing_n to_o attain_v a_o happiness_n which_o they_o be_v not_o well_o persuade_v of_o the_o reality_n of_o and_o though_o sound_a reason_n may_v well_o persuade_v they_o of_o it_o 20._o yet_o reason_n be_v now_o become_v so_o blind_a and_o unsound_a and_o partial_a and_o enslave_v to_o the_o flesh_n that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o such_o a_o office_n according_a to_o our_o necessity_n without_o some_o heavenly_a revelation_n §_o 9_o and_o it_o be_v exceed_o congruous_a to_o man_n necessity_n who_o be_v fall_v under_o the_o power_n and_o fear_n of_o death_n as_o well_o as_o the_o doubt_n and_o estrangedness_n to_o the_o other_o world_n that_o he_o that_o will_v save_v and_o heal_v we_o do_v himself_o in_o our_o nature_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o give_v we_o thereby_o a_o visible_a demonstration_n that_o indeed_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n and_o a_o life_n to_o come_v for_o we_o to_o look_v for_o though_o god_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o do_v thus_o much_o for_o we_o yet_o reason_n tell_v we_o that_o if_o he_o will_v do_v it_o it_o be_v very_o suitable_a to_o our_o necessity_n for_o all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o satisfy_v in_o such_o thing_n so_o much_o as_o ocular_a demonstration_n when_o we_o either_o see_v a_o man_n that_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a or_o have_v certain_a testimony_n of_o it_o it_o facilitate_v the_o belief_n of_o our_o own_o resurrection_n and_o he_o that_o be_v go_v into_o heaven_n before_o we_o assure_v we_o that_o a_o heaven_n there_o be_v §_o 10._o when_o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v forgive_v and_o save_v a_o sinful_a people_n it_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o fit_a mean_n provide_v to_o demonstrate_v his_o holiness_n in_o his_o justice_n and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o law_n and_o government_n and_o so_o to_o secure_v the_o end_n of_o both_o for_o if_o god_n make_v a_o penal_a law_n and_o execute_v it_o not_o but_o let_v man_n sin_n with_o impunity_n and_o do_v nothing_o which_o may_v deter_v he_o nor_o demonstrate_v his_o justice_n as_o much_o as_o the_o sinner_n suffering_n will_v do_v it_o will_v tell_v the_o world_n that_o he_o that_o give_v they_o the_o law_n and_o thereby_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v rule_v and_o judge_v they_o by_o it_o do_v but_o deceive_v they_o and_o mean_v not_o as_o he_o speak_v and_o it_o will_v bring_v both_o the_o law_n and_o governor_n into_o contempt_n and_o persuade_v man_n to_o sin_n without_o any_o fear_n and_o he_o that_o be_v question_v for_o the_o second_o crime_n will_v say_v i_o venture_v because_o i_o suffer_v not_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n first_o way_n of_o tempt_a man_n to_o sin_n to_o persuade_v mankind_n that_o god_n mean_v not_o as_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o threaten_n of_o their_o death_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v though_o god_n have_v threaten_v it_o and_o if_o god_n himself_o shall_v by_o his_o action_n say_v the_o same_o it_o will_v tempt_v they_o more_o to_o sin_n than_o satan_n can_v as_o his_o credibility_n be_v great_a therefore_o he_o that_o be_v a_o governor_n must_v be_v just_a as_o well_o as_o merciful_a and_o if_o god_n shall_v have_v pardon_v sinner_n without_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o substitute_n mean_n as_o may_v preserve_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o law_n and_o government_n and_o the_o future_a innocency_n of_o his_o subject_n as_o well_o as_o their_o punishment_n in_o the_o full_a sense_n of_o the_o law_n will_v have_v do_v the_o consequent_n will_v have_v be_v such_o as_o i_o will_v leave_v to_o your_o own_o judgement_n §_o 11._o and_o it_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o reason_n that_o so_o odious_a a_o thing_n as_o sin_n shall_v be_v public_o condemn_v and_o put_v to_o shame_n although_o the_o sinner_n be_v forgive_v as_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o purity_n of_o god_n be_v irreconcilable_a to_o sin_n though_o not_o to_o the_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o sin_n have_v all_o the_o public_a shame_n though_o the_o sinner_n escape_v and_o that_o god_n be_v not_o like_o weak_a imperfect_a man_n who_o can_v do_v good_a without_o do_v or_o encourage_v evil_a §_o 12._o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o our_o condition_n that_o see_v even_o the_o upright_o do_v renew_v their_o sin_n their_o conscience_n shall_v have_v some_o remedy_n for_o the_o renewal_a of_o their_o peace_n and_o comfort_n that_o it_o sink_v they_o not_o into_o desperation_n which_o be_v most_o suitable_o provide_v for_o they_o in_o jesus_n christ_n for_o when_o we_o be_v pardon_v once_o and_o again_o and_o oft_o and_o yet_o shall_v sin_n he_o that_o know_v the_o desert_n of_o sin_n and_o purity_n of_o god_n will_v have_v need_n also_o to_o know_v of_o some_o state_v certain_a course_n of_o remedy_n §_o 13._o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o sinful_a world_n have_v not_o only_o a_o certain_a teacher_n but_o also_o a_o perfect_a pattern_n before_o they_o of_o righteousness_n love_n self-denial_n meekness_n patience_n contempt_n of_o low_a thing_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v give_v we_o by_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o and_o therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v write_v historical_o with_o doctrine_n intermix_v that_o we_o may_v have_v both_o perfect_a precept_n and_o pattern_n §_o 14._o it_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o a_o world_n universal_o lapse_v that_o god_n shall_v make_v with_o it_o a_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o this_o covenant_n shall_v tender_v we_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o be_v a_o conditional_a act_n of_o oblivion_n and_o that_o sinner_n be_v not_o leave_v to_o the_o mere_a law_n of_o perfect_a nature_n which_o be_v to_o preserve_v that_o innocency_n which_o they_o have_v already_o lose_v to_o say_v thou_o shall_v perfect_o obey_v to_o a_o man_n that_o have_v already_o disobey_v and_o be_v unfit_a for_o perfect_a obedience_n be_v no_o sufficient_a direction_n for_o his_o pardon_n and_o recovery_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v that_o god_n gracious_a nature_n be_v instead_o of_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n or_o promise_n but_o though_o that_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o our_o hope_n yet_o that_o can_v just_o quiet_v the_o sinner_n of_o itself_o alone_o because_o he_o be_v just_a as_o well_o as_o merciful_a and_o justice_n have_v its_o object_n and_o pardon_n depend_v on_o the_o freewill_n of_o god_n which_o can_v be_v know_v to_o we_o without_o its_o proper_a sign_n the_o devil_n may_v say_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o gracious_a and_o so_o may_v any_o condemn_a malefactor_n say_v of_o a_o good_a and_o gracious_a judge_n and_o king_n and_o yet_o that_o be_v but_o a_o slender_a reason_n to_o prove_v his_o impunity_n or_o pardon_n all_o will_v confess_v that_o absolute_a pardon_n of_o all_o man_n will_v be_v unbeseeming_a a_o wise_a and_o righteous_a governor_n and_o if_o it_o must_v be_v conditional_a who_o but_o god_n can_v tell_v what_o must_v be_v the_o condition_n if_o you_o say_v that_o nature_n tell_v we_o that_o convert_v repentance_n be_v the_o condition_n i_o answer_v 1_o nature_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n can_v damn_v a_o holy_a love_a soul_n that_o have_v his_o image_n but_o yet_o it_o tell_v we_o not_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a or_o whole_a condition_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o repentance_n as_o lie_v but_o in_o a_o frighten_v wish_n that_o the_o sin_n have_v not_o be_v do_v but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o consist_v in_o the_o change_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n and_o life_n and_o contain_v a_o hatred_n to_o the_o sin_n repent_v of_o and_o a_o love_n to_o god_n and_o holiness_n and_o we_o have_v as_o much_o need_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o help_v we_o to_o this_o repentance_n as_o to_o help_v we_o to_o a_o pardon_n §_o 15._o it_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o our_o miserable_a state_n that_o the_o condition_n of_o this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v on_o our_o part_n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o benefactor_n and_o the_o thankful_a acceptance_n of_o the_o benefit_n and_o a_o hearty_a consent_n for_o the_o future_a to_o cat●lin_n follow_v his_o conduct_n and_o use_v his_o appoint_a mean_n in_o order_n to_o our_o full_a recovery_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o christian_a covenant_n §_o 16._o seeing_z man_n fall_n be_v from_o his_o god_n unto_o himself_o especial_o in_o point_n of_o love_n and_o his_o real_a recovery_n must_v be_v by_o bring_v up_o his_o soul_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n again_o supplicationem_fw-la
and_o see_v a_o guilty_a condemn_a sinner_n can_v hardly_o love_v that_o god_n who_o in_o justice_n will_v damn_v and_o punish_v he_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o congruous_a and_o effectual_a to_o man_n recovery_n to_o god_n than_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v represent_v to_o he_o as_o most_o amiable_a that_o be_v as_o one_o that_o be_v so_o willing_a to_o pardon_v and_o save_v he_o as_o to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o most_o astonish_a expression_n of_o love_n in_o such_o a_o agent_n and_o pledge_v and_o glass_n of_o love_n as_o jesus_n christ_n the_o whole_a design_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n life_n death_n resurrection_n ascension_n and_o intercession_n be_v but_o to_o be_v the_o most_o wonderful_a and_o glorious_a declaration_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n to_o sinner_n that_o as_o the_o great_a frame_n of_o the_o universe_n demonstrate_v his_o power_n so_o shall_v the_o redeemer_n be_v the_o demonstration_n of_o his_o love_n that_o we_o may_v see_v both_o the_o wise_a contrivance_n of_o his_o love_n and_o at_o how_o dear_a a_o rate_n he_o be_v content_a to_o save_v we_o that_o our_o life_n may_v be_v employ_v in_o behold_v and_o admire_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o love_n in_o this_o incomprehensible_a representation_n that_o we_o may_v love_v he_o as_o man_n that_o be_v fetch_v up_o from_o the_o very_a gate_n of_o hell_n and_o from_o under_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n and_o make_v by_o grace_n the_o heir_n of_o life_n §_o 17._o especial_o to_o have_v a_o quicken_a head_n who_o will_v give_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o his_o member_n to_o change_v their_o heart_n and_o kindle_v this_o holy_a love_n within_o they_o be_v most_o congruous_a to_o accomplish_v man_n recovery_n so_o dark_a be_v our_o mind_n and_o so_o bad_a our_o heart_n so_o strong_a be_v our_o lust_n and_o so_o many_o our_o temptation_n that_o bare_a teach_n will_v not_o serve_v our_o turn_n without_o a_o spirit_n of_o light_n and_o life_n and_o love_n to_o open_v our_o eye_n and_o turn_v our_o heart_n and_o make_v all_o outward_a mean_n effectual_a §_o 18._o the_o commission_n of_o the_o gospel-ministry_n to_o preach_v this_o gospel_n of_o pardon_n and_o salvation_n and_o to_o baptize_v consenter_n and_o gather_v and_o guide_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n with_o fatherly_a love_n be_v also_o very_o congruous_a to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n with_o who_o they_o have_v to_o do_v §_o 19_o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o the_o state_n of_o our_o tremble_a soul_n that_o be_v conscious_a of_o their_o former_a guilt_n and_o present_a unworthiness_n that_o in_o all_o their_o prayer_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o in_o a_o name_n that_o be_v more_o worthy_a and_o acceptable_a than_o their_o own_o and_o offer_v their_o service_n by_o a_o hand_n or_o intercessor_n so_o belove_v of_o god_n though_o a_o impious_a soul_n can_v never_o expect_v to_o be_v accept_v with_o god_n upon_o the_o merit_n of_o another_o yet_o a_o penitent_a soul_n who_o be_v conscious_a of_o former_a wickedness_n and_o continue_a fault_n may_v hope_v for_o that_o mercy_n by_o grace_n through_o a_o redeemer_n of_o which_o he_o can_v have_v less_o hope_n without_o one_o §_o 20._o it_o be_v congruous_a to_o their_o state_n who_o have_v satan_n their_o accuser_n that_o they_o have_v a_o patron_n a_o high_a priest_n and_o justifier_n with_o god_n not_o that_o god_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v mistake_v by_o false_a accusation_n or_o to_o do_v we_o any_o injustice_n but_o when_o our_o real_a guilt_n be_v before_o his_o face_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o satan_n will_v seek_v thereupon_o to_o procure_v our_o damnation_n there_o must_v also_o be_v just_a reason_n before_o he_o for_o our_o pardon_n which_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o plead_v or_o to_o present_v that_o be_v to_o be_v god_n instrument_n of_o our_o deliverance_n upon_o that_o account_n §_o 21._o it_o be_v exceed_o congruous_a to_o our_o condition_n of_o darkness_n and_o fear_n to_o have_v a_o head_n and_o saviour_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o glory_n to_o who_o we_o may_v commend_v our_o depart_a soul_n at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n and_o who_o will_v receive_v they_o to_o himself_o that_o we_o may_v not_o tremble_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o death_n and_o of_o eternity_n for_o though_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n be_v our_o chief_a encouragement_n yet_o see_v he_o be_v holy_a and_o just_a and_o we_o be_v sinner_n we_o have_v need_n of_o a_o mediate_a encouragement_n and_o of_o such_o condescend_v love_n as_o be_v come_v near_o unto_o we_o and_o have_v take_v up_o our_o nature_n already_o into_o heaven_n a_o saviour_n that_o have_v be_v on_o earth_n in_o flesh_n that_o have_v die_v and_o rose_n and_o revive_v and_o be_v now_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o blessedness_n be_v a_o great_a emboldner_n of_o our_o thought_n when_o we_o look_v towards_o another_o world_n which_o else_o we_o shall_v think_v of_o with_o more_o doubt_v fearful_a and_o unwilling_a mind_n to_o have_v a_o friend_n go_v before_o we_o who_o be_v so_o powerful_a so_o good_a and_o have_v make_v we_o his_o interest_n to_o think_v that_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o be_v go_v to_o and_o have_v undertake_v to_o receive_v we_o to_o himself_o when_o we_o go_v hence_o be_v a_o great_a revive_n to_o our_o amaze_a fearful_a 1._o depart_a soul_n §_o 22._o and_o it_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o the_o case_n of_o a_o afflict_a persecute_a people_n who_o be_v misrepresent_v and_o slander_v in_o this_o world_n and_o suffer_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o better_a life_n to_o have_v a_o saviour_n who_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o justify_v they_o public_o before_o all_o and_o to_o cause_v their_o righteousness_n to_o shine_v as_o the_o light_n and_o to_o turn_v all_o their_o suffering_n into_o endless_a joy_n §_o 23._o and_o it_o seem_v exceed_o congruous_a to_o reason_n see_v that_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v a_o inaccessible_a light_n that_o we_o shall_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o mediator_n of_o fruition_n as_o well_o as_o of_o acquisition_n by_o who_o the_o deity_n may_v shine_v in_o communicate_v glory_n and_o love_n to_o we_o for_o evermore_o and_o that_o god_n be_v for_o evermore_o eminent_o delight_v and_o glorify_v in_o he_o than_o in_o we_o as_o he_o excel_v we_o in_o dignity_n and_o all_o perfection_n even_o as_o in_o one_o sun_n his_o power_n and_o glory_n be_v more_o demonstrate_v than_o in_o a_o world_n of_o worm_n 30._o whether_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a or_o not_o i_o be_o further_a to_o inquire_v but_o i_o find_v now_o that_o they_o be_v very_o congruous_a to_o our_o condition_n and_o to_o reason_n and_o that_o if_o they_o be_v so_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v wonderful_a wisdom_n and_o love_n to_o man_n in_o the_o design_n and_o execution_n and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o man_n a_o very_a desirable_a thing_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v exceed_o willing_a to_o find_v any_o sound_a proof_n that_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o though_o not_o with_o a_o willingness_n which_o shall_v corrupt_v and_o pervert_v our_o judgement_n by_o self-flattery_n but_o such_o as_o will_v only_o excite_v they_o to_o the_o wise_a and_o sober_a examination_n of_o the_o case_n the_o evidence_n of_o the_o verity_n we_o shall_v next_o inquire_v after_o chap._n vi_o of_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o demonstrative_a evidence_n of_o his_o verity_n and_o authority_n 29._o though_o all_o that_o be_v say_v may_v be_v a_o reasonable_a preparative_n to_o faith_n it_o be_v more_o cogent_a evidence_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o convince_v we_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n that_o a_o man_n appear_v like_o one_o of_o we_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n incarnate_a be_v a_o thing_n which_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v without_o very_o sound_a evidence_n to_o prove_v it_o god_n have_v make_v reason_n essential_a to_o our_o nature_n it_o be_v not_o our_o weakness_n but_o our_o natural_a excellency_n and_o his_o image_n on_o our_o nature_n therefore_o he_o never_o call_v we_o to_o renounce_v it_o and_o to_o lay_v it_o by_o for_o we_o have_v no_o way_n to_o know_v principle_n but_o by_o a_o intellectual_a discern_v they_o in_o their_o proper_a evidence_n and_o no_o way_n to_o know_v conclusion_n by_o but_o by_o a_o rational_a discern_v their_o necessary_a connexion_n to_o those_o principle_n if_o god_n will_v have_v we_o know_v without_o reason_n he_o will_v not_o have_v make_v we_o reasonable_a creature_n man_n have_v no_o way_n of_o mental_a discern_a or_o knowledge_n but_o by_o understand_a thing_n in_o their_o proper_a evidence_n to_o
our_o confession_n as_o well_o without_o it_o and_o when_o the_o tongue_n be_v make_v the_o natural_a instrument_n to_o express_v the_o mind_n and_o there_o be_v variety_n of_o other_o sign_n it_o be_v incredible_a that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o even_o so_o early_o hit_v upon_o this_o one_o strange_a way_n of_o expression_n without_o some_o special_a revelation_n or_o command_n of_o god_n 2._o and_o it_o can_v be_v say_v with_o any_o credibility_n that_o god_n make_v any_o other_o revelation_n of_o his_o will_n to_o the_o world_n for_o sacrifice_v beside_o what_o be_v make_v in_o nature_n and_o in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o who_o ever_o dream_v of_o such_o a_o thing_n or_o have_v deliver_v we_o any_o such_o revelation_n and_o tell_v we_o when_o and_o to_o who_o and_o how_o it_o be_v make_v 3._o and_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o it_o be_v take_v up_o erroneous_o by_o all_o the_o world_n as_o their_o vice_n or_o superstition_n be_v for_o though_o it_o be_v past_a question_n that_o error_n have_v cause_v the_o abuse_n of_o it_o through_o the_o world_n yet_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o there_o be_v no_o probability_n of_o such_o a_o original_n for_o what_o can_v we_o imagine_v shall_v induce_v man_n to_o it_o and_o make_v all_o nation_n how_o various_a soever_o their_o idol_n be_v to_o agree_v in_o this_o way_n of_o worship_v and_o propitiate_a they_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o sensuality_n in_o it_o that_o by_o gratify_v a_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n may_v have_v such_o a_o universal_a effect_n and_o it_o must_v be_v some_o universal_a light_n or_o some_o universal_a lust_n or_o interest_n that_o must_v cause_v such_o a_o universal_a concord_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_a you_o shall_v find_v that_o tradition_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o forefather_n be_v the_o common_a argument_n plead_v for_o sacrifice_v through_o all_o the_o world_n even_o in_o the_o ancient_n historical_a report_n of_o it_o 4._o therefore_o it_o remain_v very_o probable_a at_o least_o that_o they_o receive_v it_o indeed_o by_o tradition_n from_o their_o forefather_n and_o that_o can_v be_v from_o none_o original_o but_o the_o universal_a progenitor_n of_o mankind_n who_o be_v capable_a of_o convey_v it_o to_o all_o his_o posterity_n for_o no_o history_n mention_v any_o late_a original_a nor_o can_v any_o late_a than_o adam_n or_o noah_n have_v make_v it_o so_o universal_a and_o no_o man_n can_v imagine_v why_o god_n shall_v institute_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o intimate_v the_o translate_n of_o our_o punishment_n into_o our_o redeemer_n and_o to_o point_v we_o to_o the_o great_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v true_o propitiatory_a and_o be_v the_o great_a demonstration_n of_o his_o justice_n who_o in_o mercy_n do_v forgive_v §_o 7._o ii_o the_o second_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v inherent_a and_o constitutive_a to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o image_n of_o god_n the_o unimitable_a character_n of_o divinity_n which_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v put_v into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o very_a life_n or_o soul_n of_o it_o together_o with_o the_o same_o on_o the_o pattern_n of_o his_o own_o life_n 1._o on_o christ_n himself_o the_o unimitable_a image_n of_o god_n in_o his_o perfection_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o his_o veracity_n which_o i_o ascribe_v to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o the_o ultimate_a operator_n in_o the_o trinity_n even_o that_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o he_o be_v conceive_v and_o which_o fall_v upon_o he_o at_o his_o baptism_n and_o which_o matth._n 12._o his_o enemy_n do_v blaspheme_v many_o man_n have_v so_o live_v that_o no_o notable_a sin_n of_o commission_n have_v be_v find_v or_o observe_v in_o they_o by_o the_o world_n at_o a_o distance_n but_o the_o most_o virtuous_a except_o christ_n be_v never_o without_o discernible_a infirmity_n and_o sin_n of_o omission_n no_o man_n ever_o convict_v he_o of_o any_o sin_n either_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n his_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v every_o way_n perfect_a he_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a representative_a of_o the_o divine_a perfection_n paraenesis_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o his_o miracle_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o his_o matchless_a expression_n of_o love_n and_o in_o all_o the_o holiness_n of_o his_o life_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o pride_n worldliness_n sensuality_n malice_n impatiency_n or_o any_o sin_n that_o the_o world_n have_v never_o such_o a_o pattern_n of_o self-denial_n humility_n contempt_n of_o all_o the_o wealth_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n charity_n meekness_n patience_n etc._n etc._n as_o in_o he_o he_o obey_v his_o father_n to_o the_o death_n he_o heal_v man_n body_n and_o show_v his_o pity_n to_o their_o soul_n and_o open_v the_o way_n of_o life_n even_o to_o his_o enemy_n he_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a and_o preach_v repentance_n to_o the_o impenitent_a and_o suffer_v patient_o the_o unthankful_a requital_n of_o they_o that_o render_v he_o evil_a for_o good_a he_o endure_v patient_o to_o be_v revile_v scorn_v buffet_v spit_v upon_o crown_v with_o thorn_n nail_v to_o a_o cross_n and_o put_v to_o death_n and_o this_o upon_o the_o false_a accusation_n and_o imputation_n of_o be_v a_o evil_a doer_n in_o a_o word_n he_o be_v perfect_a and_o sinless_a and_o manifest_v first_o all_o that_o obedience_n and_o holiness_n in_o his_o life_n which_o he_o put_v into_o his_o law_n and_o prescribe_v unto_o other_o and_o such_o perfection_n be_v inseparable_a from_o veracity_n obj._n how_o know_v we_o what_o fault_n he_o may_v have_v which_o come_v not_o to_o our_o knowledge_n answ_n 1._o you_o may_v see_v by_o his_o enemy_n accusation_n partly_o what_o he_o be_v free_a from_o when_o you_o see_v all_o that_o malice_n can_v invent_v to_o charge_v he_o with_o 2._o if_o the_o narrative_a of_o his_o life_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v that_o evident_a proof_n which_o i_o shall_v anon_o produce_v there_o can_v remain_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o innocency_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o person_n and_o his_o life_n object_n we_o find_v he_o accuse_v of_o many_o crime_n as_o of_o be_v a_o gluttonous_a person_n and_o a_o wine-bibber_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o impiety_n and_o treason_n answ_n the_o very_a accusation_n be_v such_o as_o show_v their_o falsehood_n and_o his_o innocency_n he_o be_v call_v a_o gluttonous_a person_n and_o a_o wine-bibber_n because_o he_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v as_o other_o man_n in_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n and_o do_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o a_o wilderness_n life_n of_o austerity_n in_o total_a abstinence_n from_o common_a meat_n and_o wine_n as_o john_n baptist_n do_v and_o as_o they_o think_v he_o that_o profess_v extraordinary_a sanctity_n shall_v have_v do_v they_o accuse_v he_o of_o eat_v with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n because_o he_o go_v to_o they_o as_o a_o physician_n to_o heal_v their_o soul_n and_o live_v a_o sociable_a charitable_a life_n and_o do_v not_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o proud_a pharisaical_a separation_n they_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o treason_n for_o say_v the_o truth_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o impiety_n for_o talk_v of_o pull_v down_o the_o temple_n when_o he_o do_v but_o prophesy_v of_o his_o own_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o malice_n have_v to_o say_v object_n he_o carry_v himself_o contemptuous_o to_o magistrate_n he_o call_v herod_n the_o king_n that_o fox_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n he_o rail_v at_o and_o call_v they_o hypocrite_n paint_a sepulcher_n a_o generation_n of_o viper_n etc._n etc._n when_o he_o be_v call_v to_o answer_v whether_o they_o shall_v pay_v tribute_n to_o cesar_n he_o do_v but_o put_v off_o the_o resolution_n by_o ambiguity_n instead_o of_o a_o open_a exhort_v they_o to_o obedience_n and_o say_v give_v to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o when_o he_o be_v call_v to_o for_o tribute_n for_o he_o he_o pay_v it_o but_o as_o a_o way_n to_o avoid_v offence_n have_v plead_v first_o his_o own_o immunity_n answ_n 1._o his_o speech_n of_o herod_n and_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v not_o revile_n but_o a_o free_a and_o just_a reprehension_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v do_v by_o god_n commission_n and_o in_o his_o name_n and_o for_o his_o cause_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v call_v revile_v than_o a_o arrest_n of_o a_o felon_n or_o traitor_n in_o the_o king_n name_n or_o a_o accusation_n put_v in_o against_o he_o for_o his_o crime_n shall_v be_v so_o call_v god_n will_v not_o forbear_v damn_v impenitent_a rebel_n though_o they_o call_v it_o cruelty_n nor_o will_v he_o forbear_v the_o reprehension_n and_o shame_n of_o their_o
villainy_n though_o they_o call_v it_o rail_v nor_o will_v he_o flatter_v proud_a rebellious_a dust_n though_o they_o call_v flattery_n a_o necessary_a civility_n nor_o will_v he_o give_v leave_n to_o his_o messenger_n to_o leave_v sin_n in_o honour_n and_o to_o let_v the_o proud_a do_v what_o their_o list_n and_o quiet_o damn_v themselves_o and_o other_o without_o plain_a reproof_n though_o it_o be_v call_v unreverent_a sauciness_n or_o sedition_n 2._o and_o he_o that_o consider_v how_o little_a title_n caesar_n have_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o the_o sword_n alone_o be_v a_o better_a proof_n of_o force_n and_o strength_n than_o of_o authority_n and_o be_v a_o plea_n which_o a_o usurper_n may_v have_v on_o his_o side_n will_v rather_o praise_v the_o submission_n and_o peaceableness_n of_o christ_n than_o blame_v he_o as_o disloyal_a but_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o obedience_n in_o general_n who_o have_v ever_o teach_v it_o more_o plain_o and_o press_o than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 2._o the_o gospel_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n itself_o also_o have_v the_o very_a image_n and_o superscription_n of_o god_n i_o will_v not_o say_v imprint_v on_o it_o for_o that_o be_v too_o little_a but_o intrinsical_o animate_v and_o constitute_v it_o which_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o method_n and_o the_o style_n 1._o the_o matter_n and_o design_n contain_v the_o most_o wonderful_a expression_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o ever_o be_v make_v to_o man_n on_o earth_n all_o be_v mysterious_a yet_o admirable_o fit_a consistent_a and_o congruous_a as_o be_v before_o declare_v that_o a_o world_n which_o be_v visible_o and_o undeniable_o fall_v into_o wickedness_n and_o misery_n shall_v have_v a_o redeemer_n saviour_n and_o mediator_n towards_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v one_o that_o be_v near_o enough_o to_o god_n and_o unto_o we_o and_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o both_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o second_o adam_n the_o root_n of_o the_o redeem_a and_o regenerate_v that_o god_n shall_v give_v all_o mercy_n from_o himself_o from_o his_o own_o bounty_n and_o fullness_n and_o not_o as_o unwilling_a be_v persuade_v to_o it_o by_o another_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o redeemer_n be_v not_o any_o angel_n or_o intermediate_v person_n but_o god_n himself_o that_o thus_o god_n come_v near_o unto_o man_n who_o be_v revolt_v from_o he_o to_o draw_v up_o man_n again_o to_o he_o that_o he_o lose_v not_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o violate_v his_o govern_n justice_n that_o he_o be_v so_o merciful_a as_o not_o to_o be_v unrighteous_a nor_o permit_v his_o law_n and_o government_n to_o be_v despise_v and_o yet_o so_o just_a as_o to_o save_v the_o penitent_a renew_a soul_n that_o he_o give_v man_n a_o new_a law_n and_o condition_n of_o salvation_n suitable_a to_o his_o lapse_v guilty_a state_n and_o leave_v he_o not_o under_o a_o law_n and_o condition_n which_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o innocent_a that_o he_o reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o apostate_n world_n in_o that_o way_n which_o only_o be_v fit_a for_o their_o recovery_n that_o be_v in_o his_o admirable_a love_n and_o goodness_n that_o so_o love_n may_v win_v our_o love_n and_o attract_v those_o heart_n which_o under_o guilt_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o condemn_a justice_n will_v never_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o love_v he_o that_o guilty_a soul_n have_v such_o evidence_n of_o god_n reconciliation_n to_o encourage_v they_o to_o expect_v his_o pardon_n and_o to_o come_v to_o he_o with_o joy_n and_o boldness_n in_o their_o address_n have_v a_o mediator_n to_o trust_v in_o 21._o and_o his_o sacrifice_n merit_n and_o acceptable_a name_n to_o plead_v with_o god_n that_o justice_n and_o mercy_n be_v so_o admirable_o conjoin_v in_o these_o effect_n that_o satan_n and_o the_o world_n and_o death_n shall_v be_v so_o conquer_v in_o a_o suffer_a way_n and_o man_n have_v so_o perfect_a a_o pattern_n to_o imitate_v for_o self-denial_n humility_n contempt_n of_o honour_n wealth_n and_o life_n and_o exact_a obedience_n and_o resignation_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n with_o perfect_a love_n to_o god_n and_o man_n that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v under_o such_o a_o universal_a administrator_n and_o the_o church_n be_v all_o unite_a in_o such_o a_o head_n and_o have_v one_o in_o their_o nature_n that_o have_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o they_o be_v go_v to_o and_o thence_o to_o send_v down_o his_o spirit_n to_o sanctify_v they_o and_o fit_v they_o for_o heaven_n and_o afterward_o to_o be_v their_o judge_n and_o to_o receive_v they_o unto_o blessedness_n and_o that_o sinner_n now_o be_v not_o condemn_v mere_o for_o want_n of_o innocency_n but_o for_o reject_v the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n which_o will_v have_v save_v they_o that_o we_o have_v all_o this_o teach_v we_o by_o a_o messenger_n from_o heaven_n argum_fw-la and_o a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o life_n deliver_v to_o we_o by_o he_o and_o all_o this_o seal_v by_o a_o divine_a attestation_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v suit_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o yet_o so_o mysterious_a as_o to_o exercise_v the_o strong_a wit_n and_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o not_o by_o a_o impose_v force_n but_o by_o the_o exhortation_n and_o persuasion_n of_o man_n like_o ourselves_o commission_v to_o open_a the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n and_o necessity_n in_o the_o gospel_n all_o this_o be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o image_n and_o wonderful_a effect_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n and_o love_n be_v as_o resplendent_a in_o it_o all_o for_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o whole_a design_n to_o set_v up_o a_o glass_n in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n in_o which_o god_n love_n and_o goodness_n shall_v be_v as_o wonderful_o represent_v to_o mankind_n as_o his_o power_n be_v in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n here_o sinful_a man_n be_v save_v by_o a_o mean_n which_o he_o never_o think_v of_o or_o desire_v he_o be_v fetch_v up_o from_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n redeem_v from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o righteous_a violate_a law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o justice_n the_o eternal_a word_n so_o condescend_v to_o man_n in_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o nature_n as_o that_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n incomprehensible_a to_o man_n become_v the_o great_a difficulty_n to_o our_o belief_n he_o reveal_v to_o we_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n above_o and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_v he_o dwell_v with_o man_n he_o converse_v with_o the_o mean_a he_o preach_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o world_n he_o refuse_v not_o such_o familiarity_n with_o the_o poor_a or_o the_o worst_a as_o be_v needful_a to_o their_o cure_n he_o spend_v his_o time_n in_o do_v good_a and_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o bodily_a disease_n he_o refuse_v the_o honour_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o work_v out_o our_o salvation_n he_o bear_v the_o ingratitude_n and_o abuse_n of_o sinner_n and_o endure_v to_o be_v scorn_v buffet_v spit_v upon_o torment_a and_o crucify_v by_o those_o to_o who_o he_o have_v do_v no_o great_a wrong_n than_o to_o seek_v their_o salvation_n he_o make_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n to_o show_v the_o world_n what_o sin_n deserve_v and_o to_o save_v they_o from_o the_o deserve_a punishment_n god_n have_v at_o first_o decree_v and_o declare_v that_o death_n shall_v be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n have_v malicious_o draw_v man_n to_o it_o by_o contradict_v this_o threaten_n of_o god_n and_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o god_n will_v falsify_v his_o word_n and_o that_o he_o do_v envy_v man_n the_o felicity_n of_o his_o advancement_n to_o be_v like_a god_n in_o knowledge_n and_o now_o christ_n will_v first_o justify_v the_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o will_v demonstrate_v himself_o by_o die_v in_o our_o stead_n that_o death_n be_v indeed_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v show_v the_o world_n that_o god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o envy_v their_o felicity_n that_o he_o will_v purchase_v it_o at_o the_o dear_a rate_n and_o deliver_v they_o free_o from_o the_o misery_n which_o sin_n and_o satan_n have_v involve_v they_o in_o thus_o enemy_n be_v reconcile_v by_o the_o suffering_n of_o he_o who_o they_o offend_v even_o by_o his_o suffering_n in_o the_o flesh_n who_o godhead_n can_v not_o suffer_v and_o by_o his_o death_n as_o man_n who_o as_o god_n be_v most_o immortal_a as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v rise_v he_o first_o appear_v to_o a_o woman_n who_o have_v be_v a_o sinner_n and_o send_v she_o as_o his_o first_o messenger_n with_o word_n of_o love_n and_o comfort_n to_o his_o
learning_n and_o so_o it_o be_v holiness_n and_o love_n which_o be_v fit_a to_o communicate_v and_o cause_v holiness_n and_o love_n which_o common_a qualification_n be_v too_o low_a for_o though_o they_o may_v be_v helpful_a in_o their_o several_a place_n and_o degree_n what_o contemn_v instrument_n have_v god_n use_v in_o the_o world_n to_o do_v that_o for_o the_o regenerate_v of_o soul_n which_o the_o great_a emperor_n by_o their_o law_n nor_o the_o subtle_a philosopher_n by_o their_o precept_n do_v not_o the_o athenian_a philosopher_n despise_v paul_n and_o gallio_n count_v his_o doctrine_n but_o a_o supertitious_a talk_n about_o name_n and_o word_n but_o satan_n himself_o despise_v not_o those_o who_o he_o tempt_v man_n to_o despise_v but_o perceive_v they_o be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o ruin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o every_o where_o stir_v up_o the_o most_o vehement_a furious_a resistance_n of_o they_o it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o there_o be_v a_o inward_a effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o give_v success_n to_o these_o mean_n which_o be_v natural_o in_o themselves_o so_o weak_a and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o great_a change_n be_v very_o often_o wrought_v on_o a_o sudden_a in_o a_o prevalent_a though_o not_o a_o perfect_a degree_n one_o sermon_n have_v do_v that_o for_o a_o many_o thousand_o sinner_n which_o twenty_o year_n teach_v of_o the_o great_a philosopher_n never_o do_v one_o sermon_n have_v turn_v they_o from_o the_o sin_n which_o they_o have_v live_v in_o all_o their_o day_n and_o have_v turn_v they_o to_o a_o life_n which_o they_o be_v stranger_n to_o before_o or_o else_o abhor_v one_o sermon_n have_v take_v down_o the_o world_n which_o have_v their_o heart_n and_o have_v put_v it_o under_o their_o foot_n and_o have_v turn_v their_o heart_n to_o another_o world_n which_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o internal_a agent_n more_o powerful_a than_o the_o speaker_n and_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o in_o the_o main_a the_o change_n be_v wrought_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o method_n first_o humble_v man_n for_o sin_n and_o misery_n and_o then_o lead_v they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o remedy_n and_o to_o god_n by_o he_o and_o so_o kindle_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o they_o by_o the_o bellows_o of_o faith_n and_o then_o lead_v they_o towards_o perfection_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o holy_a love_n iii_o and_o it_o will_v further_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o original_n of_o this_o change_n to_o consider_v on_o who_o it_o be_v thus_o wrought_v 1._o for_o their_o place_n and_o time_n 2._o their_o quality_n in_o themselves_o 3._o and_o as_o compare_v to_o each_o other_o 4._o and_o as_o to_o their_o number_n 1._o for_o time_n and_o place_n it_o be_v in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o former_a age_n now_o and_o in_o all_o nation_n and_o country_n which_o have_v receive_v he_o and_o his_o gospel_n that_o soul_n have_v be_v thus_o regenerate_v to_o god_n if_o it_o have_v be_v only_o a_o fanatic_a rapture_n of_o brainsick_a man_n it_o will_v have_v be_v like_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o basilidian_o gnostic_n montanist_n etc._n etc._n or_o of_o the_o swenckfeldian_n weigelian_o behmenist_n quaker_n and_o other_o such_o enthusiast_n who_o make_v a_o stir_n for_o one_o age_n in_o some_o one_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o go_v out_o with_o a_o perpetual_a stink_n in_o all_o age_n and_o country_n these_o effect_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o the_o first_o country_n where_o it_o be_v preach_v just_o such_o effect_n as_o it_o have_v in_o one_o kingdom_n or_o family_n it_o have_v in_o all_o other_o who_o equal_o receive_v it_o and_o just_o such_o person_n as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n at_o jerusalem_n rome_n antioch_n philippi_n etc._n etc._n such_o be_v they_o now_o in_o england_n according_a to_o their_o several_a degree_n of_o grace_n though_o not_o in_o miracle_n and_o thing_n extraordinary_a to_o the_o church_n the_o child_n of_o no_o one_o father_n be_v so_o like_a as_o all_o god_n sanctify_a child_n be_v throughout_o the_o world_n 2._o as_o to_o their_o civil_a quality_n it_o be_v man_n of_o all_o degree_n that_o be_v thus_o sanctify_v though_o few_o of_o the_o prince_n and_o great_a one_o of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o to_o their_o moral_a qualification_n it_o sometime_o fall_v on_o man_n prepare_v by_o a_o consider_v sober_a temper_n and_o by_o natural_a plainness_n and_o honesty_n of_o heart_n and_o sometime_o it_o befall_v such_o as_o be_v most_o profane_a and_o drown_v in_o sin_n and_o never_o dream_v of_o such_o a_o change_n nay_o purposely_o set_v their_o mind_n against_o it_o these_o god_n do_v often_o sudden_o surprise_v by_o a_o overpower_v light_n and_o suitable-constraining-overcoming_a attraction_n and_o make_v they_o new_a man_n 3._o and_o as_o to_o their_o capacity_n compare_v there_o be_v plain_o a_o distinguish_a hand_n that_o dispose_v of_o the_o work_n sometime_o a_o persecute_v saul_n be_v convert_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n when_o pharisees_n that_o be_v less_o persecutor_n be_v leave_v in_o their_o unregeneracy_n sometime_o under_o the_o same_o sermon_n one_o that_o be_v more_o profane_a and_o less_o prepare_v be_v convert_v when_o another_o that_o be_v more_o sober_a and_o better_o dispose_v remain_v as_o he_o be_v before_o the_o husband_n and_o the_o wife_n the_o parent_n and_o the_o child_n brother_n and_o sister_n companion_n and_o friend_n be_v divide_v by_o this_o work_n and_o one_o convert_v and_o the_o other_o not_o though_o none_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o mercy_n but_o upon_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o forfeiture_n resistance_n or_o contempt_n yet_o be_v there_o plain_o the_o effect_n of_o some_o special_a choice_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o take_v out_o some_o of_o these_o that_o abuse_a and_o forfeit_v grace_n and_o change_v they_o by_o a_o insuperable_a work_n 4._o and_o as_o to_o the_o number_n it_o be_v many_o thousand_o that_o be_v thus_o renew_v enough_o to_o show_v the_o love_n and_o power_n of_o he_o that_o call_v they_o but_o yet_o the_o far_o small_a part_n of_o mankind_n to_o show_v his_o dominion_n and_o distinguish_a will_n who_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o all_o his_o work_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o iv._o consider_v what_o opposition_n this_o work_n of_o grace_n do_v overcome_v 1._o within_o we_o 2._o without_o we_o 1._o within_o man_n it_o find_v 1._o a_o dungeon_n of_o ignorance_n dogm_n which_o it_o dispel_v by_o its_o heavenly_a light_n 2._o abundance_n of_o error_n and_o prejudice_n which_o it_o unteach_v man_n 3._o a_o stupid_a harden_a heart_n which_o it_o soften_v and_o a_o senseless_a sleepiness_n of_o soul_n which_o it_o overcome_v by_o awaken_n quicken_a power_n 4._o a_o love_n to_o sin_n which_o it_o turn_v into_o hatred_n 5._o a_o idolize_v self-esteem_a and_o self-conceitedness_n and_o self-love_n and_o self-willedness_a 253._o which_o it_o turn_v into_o self-loathing_a and_o self-denial_n not_o make_v we_o loathe_v ourselves_o as_o natural_a or_o as_o renew_a but_o as_o corrupt_v with_o sin_n and_o abuser_n of_o mercy_n and_o such_o as_o by_o wilful_a folly_n have_v wrong_v god_n and_o undo_v themselves_o so_o that_o repentance_n make_v man_n fall_v out_o with_o themselves_o and_o become_v as_o loathsome_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n 6._o it_o find_v in_o we_o a_o overvalue_a love_n of_o this_o present_a world_n and_o a_o foolish_a inordinate_a desire_n to_o its_o profit_n dignity_n and_o honour_n which_o it_o destroy_v and_o turn_v into_o a_o rational_a contempt_n 7._o it_o find_v in_o we_o a_o prevail_a sensuality_n and_o a_o unreasonable_a appetite_n and_o lust_n and_o a_o flesh_n that_o will_v bear_v down_o both_o reason_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n and_o this_o it_o subdue_v and_o mortify_v it_o be_v inordinate_a desire_n and_o bring_v it_o under_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 8._o it_o find_v all_o this_o radicate_v and_o confirm_v by_o custom_n and_o overcome_v those_o sin_n which_o a_o sinner_n have_v turn_v as_o into_o his_o nature_n and_o have_v live_v in_o the_o love_n and_o practice_n of_o all_o his_o day_n all_o this_o and_o more_o opposition_n within_o we_o grace_n do_v overcome_v in_o all_o the_o sanctify_a and_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o all_o these_o if_o well_o consider_v of_o but_o will_v appear_v to_o be_v of_o no_o small_a strength_n and_o difficulty_n to_o be_v true_o conquer_v 2._o and_o without_o we_o the_o holy_a spirit_n overcome_v 1._o worldly_n allurement_n 2._o worldly_n man_n 3._o all_o other_o assault_n of_o satan_n 1._o while_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o flesh_n and_o work_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o outward_a
shall_v i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v indeed_o such_o holiness_n in_o christian_n as_o you_o mention_v and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o dissemble_v and_o counterfeit_a answ_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o in_o the_o foregoing_a answer_n 1._o if_o you_o be_v true_o christian_n you_o may_v know_v it_o by_o possession_n in_o yourselves_o as_o you_o know_v that_o you_o love_v your_o friend_n or_o a_o learned_a man_n know_v that_o he_o have_v learning_n 2._o if_o you_o have_v it_o not_o yourselves_o you_o may_v see_v that_o other_o do_v not_o dissemble_v when_o you_o see_v they_o as_o aforesaid_a make_v it_o the_o drift_n of_o all_o their_o life_n and_o prefer_v it_o before_o their_o worldly_a interest_n and_o their_o life_n and_o hold_v on_o constant_o in_o it_o to_o the_o death_n when_o you_o see_v a_o holy_a life_n what_o reason_n have_v you_o to_o question_v a_o holy_a heart_n especial_o among_o so_o great_a a_o number_n you_o may_v well_o know_v that_o if_o some_o be_v dissembler_n all_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o so_o obj._n but_o i_o see_v no_o christian_n that_o be_v real_o so_o holy_a i_o see_v nothing_o in_o the_o best_a of_o they_o above_o civility_n but_o only_a self-conceit_n and_o affectation_n and_o strictness_n in_o their_o several_a form_n and_o mode_n of_o worship_n answ_n 1._o if_o you_o be_v no_o better_a than_o such_o yourself_o it_o be_v the_o great_a shame_n and_o plague_n of_o heart_n that_o you_o can_v have_v confess_v and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v because_o you_o have_v be_v false_a to_o the_o very_a light_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o grace_n 2._o if_o you_o know_v no_o christian_n that_o be_v true_o holy_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v either_o because_o you_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o they_o or_o because_o your_o malice_n will_v not_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o see_v any_o good_a in_o these_o that_o you_o dislike_v and_o if_o you_o have_v acquaint_v yourself_o with_o no_o christian_n that_o be_v true_o holy_a what_o can_v it_o be_v but_o malice_n or_o sensuality_n that_o turn_v you_o away_o from_o their_o acquaintance_n when_o there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o round_a about_o you_o if_o you_o have_v be_v intimate_a with_o they_o and_o know_v their_o secret_a and_o open_a conversation_n and_o yet_o have_v not_o see_v any_o holiness_n in_o they_o it_o can_v be_v no_o better_o than_o wilful_a malice_n that_o have_v blind_v you_o and_o because_o a_o negative_a witness_n that_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o not_o be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v against_o a_o affirm_v witness_n who_o know_v what_o he_o say_v bernard_n i_o will_v here_o leave_v my_o testimony_n as_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n and_o the_o revenger_n of_o a_o lie_n yea_o even_o of_o lie_v pretend_v for_o his_o glory_n i_o have_v consider_v of_o the_o character_n of_o a_o christian_a in_o the_o twenty_o particular_n before_o express_v in_o this_o chapter_n §_o 10._o and_o i_o have_v examine_v my_o soul_n concern_v they_o all_o and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o be_o able_a to_o know_v myself_o i_o must_v profess_v in_o humble_a thankfulness_n to_o my_o redeemer_n that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o which_o i_o find_v not_o in_o i_o and_o see_v god_n have_v give_v i_o his_o testimony_n within_o i_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v my_o duty_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o to_o give_v my_o testimony_n of_o it_o to_o unbeliever_n and_o i_o must_v as_o solemn_o profess_v that_o i_o have_v have_v acquaintance_n with_o hundred_o if_o not_o thousand_o on_o who_o i_o have_v see_v such_o evidence_n of_o a_o holy_a heavenly_a mind_n which_o nothing_o but_o uncharitable_a and_o unrighteous_a censure_n can_v deny_v 2._o and_o i_o have_v have_v special_a intimate_a familiarity_n with_o very_a many_o in_o all_o who_o i_o have_v discern_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o such_o innocency_n charity_n justice_n holiness_n contempt_n of_o the_o world_n mortification_n self-denial_n humility_n patience_n and_o heavenly_a mindedness_n in_o such_o a_o measure_n that_o i_o have_v see_v no_o cause_n to_o question_v their_o sincerity_n but_o great_a cause_n to_o love_n and_o honour_v they_o as_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n yea_o i_o bless_v the_o lord_n that_o most_o of_o my_o converse_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o 22_o year_n of_o my_o age_n have_v be_v with_o such_o and_o much_o of_o it_o six_o year_n soon_o therefore_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o christ_n have_v a_o sanctify_a people_n upon_o earth_n object_n maurit_fw-la but_o how_o can_v one_o man_n know_v another_o heart_n to_o be_v sincere_a answ_n i_o pretend_v not_o to_o know_v by_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n the_o heart_n of_o any_o single_a individual_a person_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v in_o such_o a_o course_n of_o effect_n as_o be_v mention_v before_o great_a reason_n to_o be_v very_o confident_a of_o it_o and_o no_o reason_n to_o deny_v it_o concern_v very_o many_o a_o child_n can_v be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o his_o father_n or_o mother_n love_v he_o because_o he_o know_v not_o the_o heart_n but_o when_o he_o consider_v of_o the_o ordinariness_n of_o natural_a affection_n and_o have_v always_o find_v such_o usage_n as_o dear_a love_n do_v use_v to_o cause_n he_o have_v much_o reason_n to_o be_v confident_a of_o it_o and_o none_o to_o deny_v it_o 2._o there_o may_v be_v a_o certainty_n that_o all_o conjunct_o do_v not_o counterfeit_v when_o you_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o single_a individual_a as_o i_o can_v be_v sure_a that_o all_o the_o mother_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o counterfeit_a love_n to_o their_o child_n though_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o it_o in_o any_o individual_a phil._n object_n but_o it_o be_v not_o all_o christian_n nor_o most_o that_o be_v thus_o holy_a answ_n it_o be_v all_o that_o be_v christian_n in_o deed_n and_o truth_n christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o own_v any_o other_o that_o he_o will_v condemn_v they_o the_o more_o for_o abuse_v his_o name_n to_o the_o cover_n of_o their_o sin_n all_o be_v not_o christian_n who_o have_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o profession_n the_o vulgar_a rabble_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o ungodly_a do_v use_n to_o join_v with_o the_o party_n that_o be_v uppermost_a and_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v most_o for_o their_o worldly_a end_n be_v it_o right_n or_o wrong_n when_o indeed_o they_o be_v of_o none_o at_o all_o hypocrite_n be_v no_o true_a christian_n but_o the_o person_n that_o christ_n be_v most_o displease_v with_o judge_v but_o by_o his_o precept_n and_o example_n and_o you_o will_v see_v who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v christian_n indeed_o object_n but_o what_o if_o the_o preach_n or_o write_n of_o a_o minister_n do_v convert_v and_o sanctify_v man_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v saviour_n of_o the_o world_n answ_n what_o ever_o they_o do_v they_o do_v it_o as_o the_o minister_n and_o messenger_n of_o christ_n by_o his_o doctrine_n and_o not_o by_o any_o of_o their_o own_o by_o his_o commission_n and_o in_o his_o name_n and_o by_o his_o power_n or_o spirit_n therefore_o it_o witness_v to_o his_o truth_n and_o honour_n who_o be_v indeed_o the_o saviour_n which_o they_o never_o affirm_v of_o themselves_o object_n what_o if_o pythagoras_n socrates_n plato_n the_o japonian_a bonzii_n heathen_n the_o indian_a bramenes_n etc._n etc._n do_v bring_v any_o soul_n to_o a_o holy_a state_n as_o its_o like_a they_o do_v it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v all_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n answ_n 1._o they_o have_v but_o a_o imperfect_a doctrine_n and_o consequent_o make_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o a_o lame_a defective_a change_n and_o that_o change_v but_o upon_o few_o and_o that_o but_o for_o a_o few_o age_n and_o then_o another_o sect_n succee_v they_o so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o such_o attestation_n and_o approbation_n of_o god_n as_o christ_n have_v in_o the_o renovation_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o all_o abroad_o the_o world_n and_o that_o for_o so_o many_o age_n together_o 2._o they_o do_v not_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n if_o they_o have_v god_n will_v not_o have_v annex_v such_o a_o testimony_n to_o their_o word_n as_o he_o do_v to_o christ_n 3._o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n he_o have_v compassion_n upon_o all_o nation_n and_o set_v up_o some_o candle_n where_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o yet_o rise_v the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v his_o as_o well_o as_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o according_o he_o have_v his_o instrument_n for_o the_o communication_n of_o they_o to_o
or_o let_v fall_v some_o confutation_n of_o they_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n at_o all_o §_o 28._o 10._o see_v it_o be_v so_o heinous_a a_o crime_n to_o divulge_v lie_n in_o multitude_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n into_o a_o blasphemy_n it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a that_o the_o conscience_n of_o so_o many_o person_n of_o so_o much_o piety_n as_o their_o write_n prove_v shall_v never_o be_v touch_v with_o remorse_n for_o so_o great_a a_o villainy_n either_o in_o life_n or_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o force_v some_o one_o of_o they_o to_o detect_v all_o the_o fraud_n if_o they_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a conscience_n in_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n much_o more_o in_o the_o best_a which_o will_v at_o some_o time_n do_v its_o office_n and_o will_v constrain_v man_n to_o confess_v especial_o their_o heinous_a crime_n and_o especial_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n when_o they_o see_v that_o their_o lie_n will_v serve_v their_o worldly_a interest_n no_o more_o and_o especial_o if_o they_o be_v man_n that_o indeed_o believe_v another_o life_n now_o consider_v if_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n have_v be_v deceiver_n how_o heinous_a a_o crime_n they_o have_v commit_v 1._o to_o affirm_v a_o man_n to_o be_v god_n incarnate_a and_o to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o on_o who_o all_o man_n must_v trust_v their_o soul_n etc._n etc._n if_o he_o have_v be_v but_o a_o deceiver_n 2._o to_o make_v such_o abundance_n of_o lie_n in_o open_a matter_n of_o fact_n 3._o to_o frame_v hereupon_o a_o new_a law_n to_o the_o world_n 4._o to_o overthrow_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o be_v there_o in_o force_n 5._o to_o abuse_v the_o intellect_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o person_n with_o such_o untruth_n and_o to_o call_v the_o world_n to_o such_o a_o needless_a work_n as_o the_o christian_a religion_n will_v be_v if_o all_o this_o be_v false_a to_o put_v the_o world_n upon_o such_o task_n as_o forsake_v all_o for_o christ_n 6._o to_o draw_v so_o many_o to_o lose_v their_o life_n in_o martyrdom_n to_o attest_v a_o lie_n 7._o to_o lose_v their_o own_o time_n and_o spend_v all_o their_o life_n and_o labour_n upon_o so_o bad_a a_o work_n all_o these_o set_v together_o will_v prove_v they_o far_o worst_a than_o any_o thief_n or_o murderer_n or_o traitor_n if_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o lie_n which_o they_o preach_v and_o attest_v there_o be_v now_o no_o man_n know_v on_o earth_n even_o in_o this_o age_n of_o villainy_n guilty_a of_o such_o a_o heinous_a crime_n as_o this_o and_o let_v any_o man_n that_o read_v the_o apostle_n write_n or_o consider_v of_o their_o life_n and_o death_n consider_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o next_o to_o a_o impossibility_n that_o so_o many_o and_o such_o person_n shall_v go_v on_o in_o such_o a_o way_n upon_o no_o great_a motive_n of_o benefit_n than_o they_o expect_v nay_o through_o such_o labour_n reproach_n and_o suffering_n and_o not_o one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o death_n be_v constrain_v by_o conscience_n to_o detect_v the_o fraud_n and_o undeceive_v the_o world_n §_o 29._o 11._o last_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o such_o person_n as_o they_o present_o convert_v shall_v ever_o have_v be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v their_o report_n of_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o a_o time_n and_o place_n where_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o disprove_v they_o if_o they_o have_v be_v false_a for_o 1._o the_o understanding_n be_v not_o free_a as_o the_o will_n be_v but_o only_o participative_a in_o quantum_fw-la à_fw-la voluntate_fw-la imperatur_fw-la and_o a_o man_n can_v believe_v what_o he_o will_v nor_o deny_v belief_n to_o cogent_a evidence_n though_o against_o his_o will_n the_o intellect_n act_n as_o in_o themselves_o be_v necessitate_v and_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la naturae_fw-la 2._o and_o all_o these_o new_a convert_n have_v understanding_n which_o be_v natural_o incline_v to_o truth_n as_o truth_n and_o averse_a to_o falsehood_n and_o they_o have_v all_o self-love_n and_o they_o all_o embrace_v now_o a_o doctrine_n which_o will_v expose_v they_o to_o suffering_n and_o calamity_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o both_o nature_n and_o interest_n oblige_v they_o to_o be_v at_o the_o labour_n of_o inquire_v whether_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o or_o not_o before_o they_o run_v themselves_o into_o so_o great_a misery_n and_o the_o three_o thousand_o which_o peter_n convert_v at_o his_o first_o sermon_n must_v also_o take_v the_o shame_n of_o be_v murderer_n of_o their_o saviour_n and_o for_o this_o they_o be_v prick_v at_o the_o heart_n and_o paul_n must_v be_v brand_v for_o a_o confess_a persecutor_n and_o guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o stephen_n and_o will_v so_o many_o man_n run_v themselves_o into_o all_o this_o for_o nothing_o to_o save_v the_o labour_n of_o a_o easy_a enquiry_n after_o some_o matter_n of_o public_a fact_n how_o easy_o may_v they_o go_v and_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o christ_n feed_v so_o many_o thousand_o twice_o miraculous_o and_o whether_o he_o heal_v such_o as_o he_o be_v say_v to_o heal_v who_o be_v then_o live_v and_o whether_o he_o raise_v lazarus_n and_o other_o from_o death_n who_o be_v then_o live_v and_o whether_o the_o earth_n tremble_v and_o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n rend_v and_o the_o sun_n be_v darken_v at_o his_o death_n and_o whether_o the_o witness_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v sufficient_a and_o if_o none_o of_o this_o have_v be_v true_a it_o will_v have_v turn_v they_o all_o from_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o deride_v they_o object_n be_v not_o the_o unbelief_n of_o the_o most_o a_o great_a reason_n against_o the_o gospel_n than_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o small_a number_n be_v for_o it_o answ_n no_o 1._o because_o it_o be_v a_o negative_a which_o they_o be_v for_o and_o many_o witness_n to_o a_o negative_a be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o a_o few_o to_o a_o affirmative_a 2._o most_o of_o they_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o very_a hear_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o shall_v inform_v they_o and_o excite_v they_o 3._o most_o man_n every_o where_o follow_v their_o ruler_n and_o look_v to_o their_o worldly_a interest_n and_o never_o much_o mind_n or_o discuss_v such_o matter_n as_o tend_v to_o their_o salvation_n especial_o by_o the_o way_n of_o suffering_n and_o disgrace_n 4._o we_o believe_v not_o that_o the_o unbelieving_a party_n do_v deny_v christ_n miracle_n but_o father_v they_o upon_o the_o devil_n therefore_o even_o their_o testimony_n be_v for_o christ_n only_o they_o hire_v the_o soldier_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v steal_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n while_o they_o sleep_v of_o which_o they_o never_o bring_v any_o proof_n nor_o can_v possible_o do_v it_o if_o asleep_a §_o 29._o iii_o i_o have_v prove_v christ_n miracle_n to_o be_v 1._o credible_a by_o the_o high_a humane_a faith_n 2._o certain_a by_o natural_a evidence_n there_o be_v a_o natural_a impossibility_n that_o the_o testimony_n shall_v be_v false_a 3._o i_o be_o next_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v certain_a by_o supernatural_a evidence_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o natural_a evidence_n as_o in_o the_o effect_n but_o be_v call_v supernatural_a from_o the_o way_n of_o cause_v it_o §_o 30._o the_o same_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n inherent_a mount_n concomitant_a and_o subsequent_a be_v the_o infallible_a proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o disciple_n testimony_n of_o christ_n his_o person_n miracle_n and_o doctrine_n §_o 31._o i._o they_o be_v person_n of_o holy_a life_n and_o holiness_n be_v the_o lively_a impress_n or_o constitution_n of_o their_o doctrine_n now_o visible_a in_o their_o write_n what_o be_v before_o say_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n himself_o be_v true_a of_o they_o and_o as_o the_o king_n coin_n be_v know_v by_o his_o image_n and_o superscription_n or_o rather_o as_o a_o unimitable_a author_n be_v know_v by_o his_o write_n for_o matter_n method_n and_o style_n even_o so_o be_v god_n spirit_n know_v in_o they_o and_o in_o their_o doctrine_n §_o 32._o ii_o their_o miraculous_a gift_n and_o work_n be_v so_o evident_a and_o so_o many_o and_o uncontrolled_a as_o amount_v to_o a_o infallible_a proof_n that_o god_n be_v his_o witness_n in_o the_o world_n and_o show_v the_o most_o infallible_a proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n §_o 33._o 1._o their_o gift_n and_o miracle_n be_v many_o in_o kind_n as_o their_o sudden_a illumination_n when_o the_o spirit_n fall_v upon_o they_o and_o know_v that_o which_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o before_o their_o prophesy_a and_o speak_v in_o language_n never_o before_o learn_v by_o they_o and_o interpret_n such_o prophecy_n and_o language_n their_o dispossess_v
be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whether_o we_o be_v jew_n or_o gentile_n bond_n or_o free_a and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n and_o in_o 1_o cor._n 14._o the_o gift_n of_o speak_v with_o tongue_n be_v so_o common_a in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v fain_o to_o give_v they_o instruction_n for_o the_o moderate_a use_n of_o it_o lest_o they_o hinder_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n by_o suppress_v prophecy_n or_o instruction_n in_o know_a tongue_n and_o therefore_o he_o persuade_v they_o to_o use_v it_o but_o more_o spare_o anim._n and_o james_n 5.14_o 15._o exhort_v christian_n when_o they_o be_v sick_a to_o send_v to_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v pray_v for_o they_o and_o anoint_v they_o and_o they_o may_v be_v forgive_v and_o recover_v by_o which_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v no_o unusual_a thing_n in_o those_o time_n to_o be_v heal_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o elder_n yea_o the_o very_a hypocrite_n and_o ungodly_a person_n that_o have_v only_o the_o barren_a profession_n of_o christianity_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n and_o this_o christ_n foretell_v matth._n 7.22_o many_o shall_v say_v in_o that_o day_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o do_v many_o wonderful_a work_n obj._n but_o all_o be_v not_o heal_v by_o they_o paul_n leave_v trophimus_n at_o miletum_n sick_a why_o do_v not_o paul_n cure_v timothy_n of_o his_o weak_a stomach_n and_o infirmity_n without_o drink_v of_o wine_n if_o he_o can_v do_v it_o answ_n 1._o certain_o they_o do_v not_o cure_v all_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a for_o than_o who_o will_v have_v die_v it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o work_a miracle_n to_o make_v man_n immortal_a here_o on_o earth_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o heaven_n 2._o and_o it_o be_v easy_o confess_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o at_o the_o command_n or_o will_v of_o they_o that_o have_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o do_v what_o and_o when_o they_o please_v but_o what_o the_o spirit_n please_v and_o his_o operation_n be_v at_o his_o own_o time_n and_o disposal_n and_o this_o prove_v the_o more_o full_o that_o it_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o contrivance_n of_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n 3._o and_o miracle_n and_o tongue_n be_v not_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o rather_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o and_o therefore_o a_o trophimus_n or_o a_o timothy_n may_v be_v unhealed_a §_o 35._o 3._o these_o miracle_n be_v oftentimes_o wrought_v even_o for_o many_o year_n together_o in_o several_a country_n and_o place_n through_o the_o world_n where_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n come_v and_o not_o only_o once_o or_o for_o a_o little_a space_n of_o time_n dissimulation_n may_v be_v easily_o cloak_v for_o a_o few_o act_n than_o it_o can_v be_v for_o so_o many_o year_n at_o least_o these_o gift_n and_o miracle_n continue_v during_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n though_o not_o perform_v every_o day_n or_o so_o common_o as_o may_v make_v they_o uneffectual_a yet_o so_o frequent_o as_o to_o give_v success_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o keep_v up_o a_o reverence_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v wrought_v not_o only_o at_o jerusalem_n but_o at_o samaria_n antioch_n ephesus_n corinth_n philippi_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n through_o the_o world_n §_o 36._o 4._o they_o be_v also_o wrought_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o multitude_n and_o not_o only_o in_o a_o corner_n where_o there_o be_v more_o possibility_n of_o deceit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o disciple_n at_o jerusalem_n before_o all_o the_o people_n that_o be_v they_o all_o hear_v they_o speak_v in_o several_a tongue_n the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n even_o the_o parthian_n and_o mede_n and_o elamites_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o mesopotamia_n judaea_n cappadocia_n pontus_n asia_n phrygia_n pamphylia_n egypt_n lybia_n cyrene_n rome_n jew_n and_o proselyte_n cretes_n and_o arabian_n act._n 2.8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o it_o be_v three_o thousand_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o act._n 2.38_o those_o that_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o all_o the_o people_n see_v the_o lame_a man_n that_o be_v cure_v by_o peter_n and_o john_n act._n 3._o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n be_v a_o public_a thing_n so_o that_o fear_n fall_v on_o all_o and_o hypocrite_n be_v deter_v from_o join_v with_o the_o church_n act._n 5._o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o interpretation_n be_v common_o exercise_v before_o congregation_n or_o multitude_n and_o crowd_n of_o people_n flock_v to_o they_o to_o be_v heal_v as_o with_o christ_n they_o uncovered_v the_o roof_n of_o the_o house_n to_o lay_v the_o sick_a before_o he_o so_o with_o the_o apostle_n they_o strive_v who_o may_v come_v within_o their_o shadow_n or_o touch_v the_o hem_n of_o their_o garment_n or_o have_v clothes_n or_o napkin_n from_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v heal_v so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o age_n of_o public_a miracle_n §_o 37._o 5._o all_o these_o miracle_n be_v uncontrolled_a that_o be_v they_o be_v not_o wrought_v in_o opposition_n to_o any_o control_a truth_n which_o have_v certain_a evidence_n contradict_v this_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o overtop_v by_o any_o great_a miracle_n for_o the_o contrary_n a_o miracle_n if_o god_n shall_v permit_v it_o to_o be_v wrought_v in_o such_o a_o case_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v control_v either_o of_o these_o two_o way_n 1._o if_o a_o man_n shall_v work_v miracle_n to_o contradict_v the_o certain_a light_n of_o nature_n or_o persuade_v man_n to_o that_o which_o be_v certain_o false_a 2._o if_o man_n shall_v do_v wonder_n as_o janne_n and_o jambre_v the_o egyptian_a sorcerer_n which_o shall_v be_v overtop_v by_o great_a wonder_n as_o those_o of_o moses_n and_o as_o simon_n magus_n and_o elymas_n by_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o these_o case_n god_n can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o deceive_v man_n by_o his_o power_n or_o permission_n when_o he_o give_v they_o a_o sufficient_a preservative_n but_o these_o miracle_n have_v no_o such_o control_n but_o prevail_v without_o any_o check_n from_o contradictory_n truth_n or_o miracle_n thus_o christ_n perform_v his_o promise_n joh._n 14.12_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v shall_v he_o do_v also_o and_o great_a work_n than_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v because_o i_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n §_o 38._o iii_o the_o three_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o apostle_n witness_v be_v the_o marvellous_a success_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o sanctify_a of_o soul_n which_o as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v without_o the_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o neither_o will_v the_o righteous_a and_o merciful_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n have_v make_v a_o company_n of_o profligate_v liar_n and_o deceiver_n his_o instrument_n of_o do_v this_o excellent_a work_n by_o cheat_n and_o falsehood_n this_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o as_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o christ_n own_o doctrine_n i_o now_o speak_v of_o it_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o apostle_n verity_n in_o their_o testimony_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o miracle_n of_o christ_n peter_n convert_v three_o thousand_o at_o once_o many_o thousand_o and_o miriads_o up_z and_o down_o the_o world_n be_v speedy_o convert_v and_o what_o be_v this_o conversion_n they_o be_v bring_v unfeigned_o to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o and_o their_o neighbour_n as_o themselves_o act._n 2.42_o 46._o they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n and_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v together_o and_o have_v all_o thing_n common_a not_o by_o level_v but_o by_o lone_a and_o sell_v their_o possession_n and_o good_n and_o part_v they_o to_o all_o man_n as_o every_o man_n have_v need_v and_o do_v eat_v their_o meat_n with_o gladness_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n praise_v god_n and_o have_v favour_n with_o all_o the_o people_n act._n 4.32_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o of_o one_o soul_n neither_o say_v any_o of_o they_o that_o ought_v of_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o possess_v be_v his_o own_o but_o they_o have_v all_o thing_n common_a all_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n have_v his_o spirit_n and_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v and_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8._o they_o that_o be_v christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n
the_o rest_n will_v quick_o detect_v it_o and_o be_v upon_o his_o head_n §_o 88_o 9_o yea_o the_o many_o sect_n and_o contention_n among_o christian_n and_o the_o many_o heretic_n that_o be_v at_o enmity_n with_o they_o will_v certain_o have_v detect_v any_o combination_n to_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n §_o 89._o 10._o some_o few_o heretic_n in_o the_o beginning_n do_v attempt_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o nicodemus_n and_o some_o other_o forge_a write_n and_o to_o have_v corrupt_v some_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n present_o cry_v they_o down_o §_o 90._o 11._o most_o heretic_n have_v plead_v these_o same_o scripture_n and_o deny_v they_o not_o to_o be_v genuine_a yea_o julian_n celsus_n porphyry_n and_o other_o heathen_n do_v not_o deny_v it_o but_o take_v it_o as_o a_o certain_a truth_n §_o 91._o 12._o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n clemens_n ignatius_n justin_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n cyprian_n arnobius_n athenagoras_n lactantius_n eusebius_n nazianzen_n nyssen_n basil_n chrysostom_n epiphanius_n hierom_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n do_v all_o cite_v these_o scripture_n as_o we_o now_o have_v they_o in_o all_o thing_n material_a §_o 92._o 13._o the_o christian_a emperor_n have_v insert_v the_o mention_n of_o some_o passage_n in_o their_o law_n in_o the_o same_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o our_o bibles_n §_o 93._o 14._o several_a council_n have_v not_o only_o cite_v several_a passage_n out_o of_o they_o but_o plead_v they_o still_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o enumerate_v the_o particular_a book_n which_o constitute_v the_o whole_a systeme_n all_o this_o set_v together_o will_v tell_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n consideration_n and_o impartiality_n that_o we_o have_v much_o full_a certainty_n that_o these_o scripture_n be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o first_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n than_o they_o can_v have_v that_o virgil_n ovid_n cicero_n or_o plutarch_n work_n be_v they_o or_o that_o the_o statute_n of_o this_o land_n be_v currant_n yea_o be_v it_o not_o lest_o i_o be_v too_o tedious_a i_o may_v distinct_o show_v you_o the_o forementioned_a threefold_a certainty_n of_o all_o this_o 1._o a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o the_o strong_a humane_a faith_n 2._o a_o natural_a certainty_n ground_v upon_o physical_a impossibility_n of_o the_o contrary_n 3._o and_o somewhat_o of_o a_o divine_a supernatural_a attestation_n by_o the_o continue_a blessing_n of_o god_n on_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o soul_n in_o every_o age_n and_o this_o bring_v i_o up_o to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o have_v all_o this_o while_n be_v show_v how_o the_o three_o first_o part_n of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v to_o christ_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o viz._n prophecy_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o miracle_n i_o come_v now_o in_o a_o word_n to_o the_o four_o §_o 94._o iu._n how_o may_v we_o certain_o know_v the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v to_o christ_n incluso_fw-la viz._n the_o success_n of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o regeneration_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o actual_a save_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n answ_n i_o shall_v answer_v this_o 1._o as_o to_o the_o time_n past_a and_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o present_a age_n §_o 95._o 1._o what_o man_n have_v be_v in_o time_n past_a we_o have_v but_o these_o three_o way_n to_o know_v 1._o by_o the_o history_n of_o those_o age_n 2._o by_o their_o remain_a work_n 3._o by_o their_o successor_n in_o who_o their_o belief_n and_o quality_n be_v continue_v and_o 1._o that_o there_o have_v be_v holy_a person_n in_o all_o age_n yea_o that_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v such_o we_o have_v as_o good_a testimony_n as_o history_n can_v afford_v whether_o you_o will_v judge_v of_o they_o by_o their_o profession_n life_n or_o suffering_n 2._o their_o remain_a work_n be_v very_o great_a testimony_n what_o a_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n charity_n and_o justice_n do_v breath_n in_o the_o write_n of_o those_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n clemens_n romanus_n ignatius_n cyprian_n ephrem_fw-la syrus_n macarius_n augustine_n gregory_n nazianzen_n gr._n nyssen_n basil_n ambrose_n chrysostom_n salvian_n cassianus_n bernard_n etc._n etc._n 3._o those_o that_o succeed_v they_o at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o serious_a profession_n of_o christianity_n be_v a_o live_a history_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o ancestor_n §_o 96._o 2._o of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o this_o present_a age_n there_o be_v a_o double_a knowledge_n to_o be_v have_v 1._o by_o they_o that_o be_v regenerate_v themselves_o 2._o by_o they_o that_o be_v not_o between_o these_o way_n of_o knowledge_n the_o difference_n must_v be_v great_a saacl_n §_o 97._o 1._o as_o he_o that_o have_v learning_n or_o love_n to_o his_o parent_n or_o loyalty_n to_o his_o king_n or_o faithfulness_n to_o his_o friend_n may_v know_v that_o he_o have_v it_o so_o may_v he_o that_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o have_v a_o predominant_a love_n to_o god_n a_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o conversation_n a_o hatred_n of_o sin_n a_o delight_n in_o holiness_n a_o love_n to_o all_o man_n even_o his_o enemy_n a_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n a_o mastery_n over_o his_o fleshly_a appetite_n ibid._n sense_n and_o lust_n a_o holy_a government_n of_o his_o passion_n thought_n and_o tongue_n with_o a_o long_a desire_n to_o be_v perfect_a in_o all_o this_o and_o a_o support_a hope_n to_o see_v god_n glory_n and_o enjoy_v he_o in_o the_o delight_n of_o love_n and_o praise_n for_o evermore_o §_o 98._o this_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n in_o our_o self_n be_v not_o the_o reason_n or_o motive_n of_o our_o first_o faith_n but_o of_o our_o confirmation_n and_o full_a assurance_n in_o believe_v afterward_o for_o a_o man_n must_v in_o some_o sort_n believe_v in_o christ_n before_o he_o can_v know_v that_o he_o be_v sanctify_v by_o he_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o motive_n be_v sufficient_a to_o begin_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o god_n ordinary_o use_v to_o that_o end_n §_o 99_o it_o be_v christ_n appoint_a method_n that_o by_o learning_n of_o he_o and_o use_v his_o appoint_a mean_n man_n be_v bring_v up_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o holiness_n as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v this_o witness_n in_o themselves_o and_o thence_o to_o grow_v up_o to_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_n therefore_o if_o any_o one_o that_o have_v hear_v the_o gospel_n do_v want_v this_o inward_a assure_v testimony_n it_o be_v because_o they_o have_v be_v false_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o mean_n before_o reveal_v to_o they_o he_o that_o will_v but_o inquire_v into_o the_o gospel_n and_o receive_v it_o and_o obey_v it_o so_o far_o as_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o do_v it_o and_o not_o be_v false_a to_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o interest_n shall_v receive_v that_o renew_n sanctify_a spirit_n which_o will_v be_v a_o abide_a witness_n in_o himself_o but_o if_o he_o will_v reject_v know_v truth_n and_o refuse_v know_v duty_n and_o neglect_v the_o most_o reasonable_a mean_n that_o be_v propose_v to_o he_o he_o must_v blame_v himself_o if_o he_o continue_v in_o unbelief_n and_o want_v that_o evidence_n which_o other_o have_v suppose_v that_o in_o a_o common_a plague_n one_o physician_n shall_v be_v fame_v to_o be_v the_o only_a and_o infallible_a curer_n of_o all_o that_o take_v his_o remedy_n and_o suppose_v many_o defame_v he_o and_o say_v 34._o he_o be_v but_o a_o deceiver_n and_o other_o tell_v you_o he_o have_v cure_v we_o and_o many_o thousand_o and_o we_o can_v easy_o convince_v you_o that_o his_o remedy_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o that_o be_v hurtful_a and_o therefore_o you_o may_v safe_o try_v they_o especial_o have_v no_o other_o help_n he_o that_o will_v so_o far_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o trust_v he_o now_o as_o to_o try_v his_o remedy_n may_v live_v but_o he_o that_o will_v not_o must_v blame_v none_o but_o himself_o if_o he_o die_v of_o his_o disease_n he_o that_o try_v shall_v know_v by_o his_o own_o cure_n and_o experience_n that_o his_o physician_n be_v no_o deceiver_n and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o and_o yet_o complain_v that_o he_o want_v that_o experimental_a knowledge_n do_v but_o talk_v like_o a_o peevish_a self-destroyer_n §_o 100_o 2._o he_o that_o yet_o have_v not_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n in_o himself_o may_v yet_o be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v in_o other_o and_o thereby_o may_v know_v that_o christ_n be_v indeed_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o no_o deceiver_n even_o as_o in_o the_o aforesaid_a instance_n he_o that_o never_o try_v the_o physician_n himself_o yet_o if_o he_o see_v thousand_o cure_v by_o he_o may_v know_v by_o that_o that_o
he_o be_v not_o a_o deceiver_n and_o so_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o trust_v and_o try_v he_o himself_o cause_n §_o 101._o the_o way_n to_o know_v that_o other_o be_v thus_o regenerate_v be_v 1._o by_o believe_v they_o fide_fw-la humana_fw-la 2._o by_o discern_v it_o in_o the_o effect_n and_o though_o it_o be_v too_o frequent_a to_o have_v presumptuous_a self-conceited_a person_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n have_v renew_v they_o when_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n yet_o all_o humane_a testimony_n of_o matter_n so_o near_o man_n even_o within_o they_o be_v not_o therefore_o incredible_a but_o wise_a man_n will_v discern_v a_o credible_a person_n from_o a_o incredible_a in_o the_o forementioned_a instance_n many_o may_v tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v cure_v by_o the_o physician_n when_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o will_v you_o therefore_o believe_v no_o one_o that_o tell_v you_o that_o he_o be_v cure_v many_o may_v boast_v of_o that_o learning_n which_o they_o have_v not_o and_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o have_v knowledge_n in_o mathematics_n or_o in_o several_a art_n but_o be_v no_o man_n therefore_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o say_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o i_o persuade_v no_o man_n here_o to_o take_v up_o with_o the_o bare_a belief_n of_o another_o man_n word_n where_o he_o see_v not_o enough_o in_o the_o effect_n to_o second_v it_o and_o to_o persuade_v a_o reasonable_a man_n that_o it_o be_v true_a but_o as_o he_o that_o hear_v a_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a profess_v that_o he_o be_v cure_v may_v well_o believe_v he_o if_o he_o see_v he_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o sleep_v and_o labour_n and_o laugh_v as_o the_o healthful_a use_n to_o do_v so_o he_o that_o hear_v a_o sober_a man_n profess_v with_o humble_a thanks_o to_o god_n that_o he_o have_v change_v and_o renew_v he_o by_o his_o spirit_n may_v well_o believe_v he_o if_o he_o see_v he_o live_v like_o a_o renew_a man_n §_o 102._o though_o you_o can_v be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o any_o one_o individual_a person_n but_o yourself_o because_o we_o know_v not_o the_o heart_n yet_o may_v you_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o do_v not_o dissemble_v because_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a impossibility_n that_o interest_n and_o motive_n and_o sufficient_a cause_n shall_v concur_v to_o lead_v they_o to_o it_o as_o before_o i_o say_v we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o any_o individual_a woman_n that_o she_o do_v not_o dissemble_v love_n to_o her_o husband_n and_o child_n but_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o from_o many_o natural_a proof_n which_o may_v be_v give_v §_o 103._o pentecost_n all_o these_o effect_n of_o renovation_n may_v be_v discern_v in_o other_o 1._o you_o may_v discern_v that_o they_o be_v much_o grieve_v for_o their_o former_a sin_n 2._o that_o they_o be_v weary_a of_o the_o remnant_n of_o their_o corruption_n or_o infirmity_n 3._o that_o they_o long_o and_o labour_v to_o be_v deliver_v and_o to_o have_v their_o cure_n perfect_v and_o live_v in_o the_o diligent_a use_n of_o mean_n to_o that_o end_n 4._o that_o they_o live_v in_o no_o sin_n but_o small_a humane_a frailty_n 5._o that_o all_o the_o riches_n in_o the_o world_n will_v not_o hire_v they_o deliberate_o and_o wilful_o to_o sin_n but_o they_o will_v rather_o choose_v to_o suffer_v what_o man_n can_v lay_v upon_o they_o 6._o that_o they_o be_v vile_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n because_o of_o their_o remain_a imperfection_n 7._o that_o they_o do_v no_o wrong_a or_o injustice_n to_o any_o or_o if_o they_o do_v wrong_v any_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o confess_v it_o and_o make_v they_o satisfaction_n 8._o that_o they_o love_v all_o good_a man_n with_o a_o love_n of_o complacency_n and_o all_o bad_a man_n with_o a_o love_n of_o benevolence_n yea_o even_o their_o enemy_n and_o instead_o of_o revenge_n be_v ready_a to_o forgive_v and_o to_o do_v what_o good_a they_o can_v for_o they_o and_o all_o man_n and_o that_o they_o hate_v bad_a man_n in_o opposition_n to_o complacency_n but_o as_o they_o hate_v themselves_o for_o their_o sin_n 9_o that_o they_o love_v all_o doctrine_n person_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v holy_a temperate_a just_a and_o charitable_a 10._o that_o their_o passion_n at_o least_o be_v so_o far_o govern_v that_o they_o do_v not_o carry_v they_o to_o swear_v curse_n or_o rail_v or_o slander_n or_o fight_v or_o to_o do_v evil_a 11._o that_o their_o tongue_n be_v use_v to_o speak_v with_o reverence_n of_o holy_a and_o righteous_a thing_n and_o not_o to_o filthy_a ribbald_n rail_a lie_a or_o other_o wicked_a speech_n 12._o that_o they_o suffer_v not_o their_o lust_n to_o carry_v they_o to_o fornication_n nor_o their_o appetite_n to_o drunkenness_n or_o notable_a excess_n 13._o that_o nothing_o below_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o principle_n object_n of_o their_o devotion_n but_o to_o know_v he_o to_o love_v he_o to_o serve_v and_o please_v he_o and_o to_o delight_v in_o these_o be_v the_o great_a care_n and_o desire_v and_o endeavour_v of_o their_o soul_n 14._o that_o their_o chief_a hope_n be_v of_o heaven_n and_o everlasting_a happiness_n with_o god_n in_o the_o perfection_n of_o this_o sight_n and_o love_n 15._o that_o the_o roll_a motive_n be_v fetch_v from_o god_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o most_o command_v their_o choice_n their_o comfort_n and_o their_o life_n 16._o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o this_o all_o worldly_a riches_n honour_n and_o dignity_n be_v sordid_a contemptible_a thing_n in_o their_o esteem_n 17._o that_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o this_o they_o be_v much_o support_v with_o patience_n under_o all_o suffering_n in_o the_o way_n 18._o that_o they_o value_v and_o use_v the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n in_o their_o calling_n and_o labour_n in_o subserviency_n to_o god_n and_o heaven_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o its_o proper_a end_n 19_o that_o they_o use_v their_o relation_n in_o the_o same_o subserviency_n rule_v chief_o for_o god_n if_o they_o be_v superior_n and_o obey_v chief_o for_o god_n if_o they_o be_v inferior_n and_o that_o with_o fidelity_n submission_n and_o patience_n so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v know_v his_o will_n 20._o that_o their_o care_n and_o daily_a business_n in_o the_o world_n be_v by_o diligent_a redeem_n precious_a time_n in_o get_v and_o do_v what_o good_a they_o can_v to_o make_v ready_a for_o death_n and_o judgement_n to_o secure_v their_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o to_o please_v their_o god_n §_o 104._o all_o this_o may_v be_v discern_v in_o other_o with_o so_o great_a probability_n of_o their_o sincerity_n that_o no_o charitable_a reason_n shall_v have_v cause_n to_o question_v it_o and_o i_o repeat_v my_o testimony_n that_o here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n which_o i_o have_v not_o faithful_o copy_v out_o of_o my_o own_o heart_n and_o experience_n and_o that_o i_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o multitude_n who_o i_o very_o believe_v be_v much_o better_a than_o myself_o and_o have_v a_o great_a measure_n of_o all_o this_o grace_n §_o 105._o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o man_n superstitious_o appoint_v themselves_o unnecessary_a task_n and_o forbid_v themselves_o many_o lawful_a thing_n and_o then_o call_v this_o by_o the_o name_n of_o holiness_n i_o answer_v that_o many_o indeed_o do_v so_o but_o it_o be_v no_o such_o that_o i_o be_o speak_v of_o let_v reason_n judge_n whether_o in_o this_o or_o any_o of_o the_o foregoing_a description_n of_o holiness_n there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n at_o all_o contain_v §_o 106._o he_o that_o will_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v this_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o other_o must_v necessary_o observe_v these_o reasonable_a condition_n 1._o choose_v not_o those_o that_o be_v notorious_o no-christians_a to_o judge_v of_o christianity_n by_o a_o drunkard_n fornicator_n voluptuous_a carnal_a worldly_a proud_a or_o selfish_a person_n call_v himself_o a_o christian_n be_v certain_o but_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o shall_v christianity_n be_v judge_v of_o by_o a_o lie_a hypocrite_n 2._o as_o you_o must_v choose_v such_o to_o try_v by_o as_o be_v true_o serious_a in_o their_o religion_n so_o you_o must_v be_v intimate_a and_o familiar_a with_o they_o and_o not_o stranger_n that_o see_v they_o as_o afar_o off_o for_o they_o make_v no_o vain_a ostentation_n of_o their_o piety_n and_o how_o can_v they_o discern_v the_o divine_a motion_n of_o their_o soul_n that_o only_o see_v they_o in_o common_a conversation_n 3._o you_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o they_o by_o the_o revile_n of_o ignorant_a ungodly_a man_n 4._o nor_o by_o the_o reproach_n of_o selfish_a man_n that_o be_v move_v only_o by_o some_o interest_n of_o their_o own_o 5._o nor_o by_o the_o word_n of_o faction_n civil_a or_o religious_a which_o judge_v of_o all_o man_n according_a to_o the_o
be_v sufficient_a in_o their_o kind_n before_o though_o more_o full_a and_o excellent_a since_o his_o come_n if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v delude_v into_o infidelity_n by_o this_o objection_n which_o indeed_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n you_o must_v not_o further_o one_o error_n by_o another_o 1._o think_v not_o that_o god_n be_v hire_v or_o persuade_v by_o christ_n as_o against_o his_o will_n to_o forgive_v man_n sin_n and_o save_v their_o soul_n or_o to_o do_v they_o any_o good_a understand_v that_o no_o good_a come_v to_o man_n or_o any_o creature_n but_o total_o from_o god_n will_v and_o love_n who_o be_v the_o original_a and_o eternal_a goodness_n all_o the_o question_n be_v but_o of_o the_o modus_fw-la conferendi_fw-la the_o way_n of_o his_o conveyance_n and_o then_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v incredible_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v out_o his_o mercy_n by_o degree_n and_o with_o some_o diversity_n 2._o think_v not_o that_o christianity_n do_v teach_v man_n that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n or_o church_n then_o or_o that_o be_v not_o now_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v so_o cast_v off_o and_o forsake_v by_o god_n as_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o be_v leave_v as_o utter_o hopeless_a or_o remediless_a nor_o that_o they_o be_v upon_o no_o other_o term_n for_o salvation_n than_o man_n in_o innocency_n be_v under_o which_o be_v obey_v perfect_o and_o live_v or_o if_o thou_o sin_n thou_o shall_v die_v for_o this_o have_v be_v to_o leave_v they_o as_o hopeless_a as_o the_o devil_n when_o once_o they_o have_v sin_v 3._o and_o think_v not_o that_o christ_n can_v show_v no_o mercy_n nor_o do_v any_o thing_n towards_o the_o salvation_n of_o a_o sinner_n before_o he_o be_v know_v himself_o to_o the_o sinner_n especial_o before_o he_o be_v know_v as_o a_o incarnate_a mediator_n or_o one_o that_o be_v to_o be_v incarnate_a he_o strike_v down_o paul_n and_o speak_v to_o he_o from_o heaven_n before_o paul_n know_v he_o he_o send_v philip_n to_o the_o eunuch_n before_o he_o know_v he_o and_o peter_z to_o cornelius_n and_o send_v the_o gospel_n to_o heathen_a nation_n before_o they_o know_v he_o if_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o even_o after_o that_o they_o have_v live_v long_o with_o christ_n and_o hear_v his_o preach_n and_o see_v his_o miracle_n yea_o and_o preach_v and_o wrought_v miracle_n themselves_o do_v not_o yet_o understand_v that_o he_o must_v suffer_v and_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o send_v down_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n you_o may_v conjecture_v by_o this_o what_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o those_o before_o christ_n come_n be_v who_o be_v save_v 4._o think_v not_o therefore_o that_o christ_n have_v no_o way_n or_o degree_n of_o effectual_a teach_v but_o by_o the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o his_o incarnation_n death_n and_o resurrection_n which_o be_v now_o the_o gospel_n 5._o and_o think_v not_o that_o all_o the_o mercy_n which_o pagan_a nation_n have_v from_o god_n be_v no_o act_n of_o grace_n nor_o have_v any_o tendency_n to_o their_o conversion_n and_o salvation_n doubtless_o it_o be_v the_o same_o redeemer_n even_o the_o eternal_a wisdom_n and_o word_n of_o god_n who_o before_o his_o incarnation_n give_v great_a mercy_n to_o the_o jew_n better_o and_o lesser_a to_o the_o gentile_n he_o do_v by_o these_o mercy_n oblige_v or_o lead_v man_n to_o repentance_n and_o gratitude_n and_o reveal_v god_n as_o merciful_a and_o ready_a to_o forgive_v all_o capable_a sinner_n as_o even_o under_o the_o law_n exod_n 34._o he_o reveal_v himself_o fullyer_n to_o moses_n the_o lord_n the_o lord_n god_n merciful_a and_o gracious_a long-suffering_a and_o abundant_a in_o goodness_n and_o truth_n keep_v mercy_n for_o thousand_o forgive_a iniquity_n transgression_n and_o sin_n etc._n etc._n tho_o he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n no_o not_o by_o christ_n clear_v the_o guilty_a that_o be_v either_o say_v to_o the_o wicked_a thou_o be_v just_a or_o pardon_v any_o uncapable_a subject_n doubtless_o mercy_n bind_v heathen_n to_o know_v god_n as_o merciful_a and_o to_o love_v he_o and_o to_o improve_v that_o mercy_n to_o their_o attainment_n of_o more_o and_o to_o seek_v after_o further_a knowledge_n and_o to_o be_v better_a than_o they_o be_v and_o they_o be_v set_v under_o a_o certain_a course_n of_o mean_n and_o appoint_a duty_n in_o order_n to_o their_o recovery_n and_o salvation_n else_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v for_o their_o own_o recovery_n and_o consequent_o sin_v not_o by_o omit_v it_o by_o all_o this_o you_o may_v perceive_v that_o christ_n do_v much_o by_o mercy_n and_o teach_v before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o since_o for_o all_o the_o world_n which_o have_v a_o tendency_n to_o their_o conversion_n recovery_n and_o salvation_n obj._n xi_o the_o conception_n of_o a_o virgin_n without_o man_n be_v improbable_a and_o must_v all_o depend_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o she_o own_o word_n and_o the_o meanness_n of_o his_o parentage_n breed_v and_o condition_n do_v more_o increase_v the_o difficulty_n answ_n 1._o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n shall_v begin_v in_o a_o miracle_n when_o his_o life_n be_v to_o be_v spend_v and_o finish_v in_o miracle_n 2._o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v promise_v before_o by_o the_o prophet_n isa_n 7.14_o a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o bear_v a_o son_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o shall_v the_o fulfil_n of_o a_o prophecy_n by_o miracle_n be_v incredible_a 3._o it_o be_v neither_o above_o nor_o against_o the_o power_n wisdom_n or_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v incredible_a there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n or_o impossibility_n in_o it_o nor_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o sense_n or_o reason_n reason_n say_v indeed_o that_o it_o be_v above_o the_o power_n of_o man_n and_o above_o the_o common_a course_n of_o nature_n but_o not_o that_o it_o be_v above_o the_o power_n of_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n be_v it_o any_o hard_a for_o god_n to_o cause_v a_o virgin_n to_o conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o to_o make_v the_o first_o of_o humane_a kind_n or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o nothing_o 4._o it_o be_v meet_v that_o he_o who_o be_v to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_o a_o teacher_n and_o pattern_n of_o perfect_a righteousness_n and_o a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o ordinary_a child_n of_o adam_n nor_o be_v himself_o defile_v with_o original_a or_o actual_a sin_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o peculiar_a sense_n the_o son_n of_o god_n 5._o and_o this_o do_v not_o depend_v only_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o virgin-mothers_n word_n but_o on_o the_o multitude_n of_o miracle_n whereby_o god_n himself_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o meanness_n of_o his_o person_n and_o condition_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o needful_a part_n of_o the_o humiliation_n which_o he_o be_v for_o our_o sin_n to_o undergo_v that_o he_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n phil._n 2.7_o 8_o 9_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o suitable_a testimony_n against_o the_o pride_n carnality_n and_o worldly-mindedness_a of_o delude_a man_n who_o overvalue_v the_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o suitable_a mean_n to_o teach_v man_n to_o judge_v of_o thing_n aright_o and_o value_v every_o thing_n true_o as_o it_o be_v the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o the_o world_n he_o that_o be_v to_o cure_v man_n of_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o its_o riches_n dignity_n and_o pleasure_n &_o he_o that_o be_v to_o save_v they_o from_o this_o by_o the_o office_n of_o a_o saviour_n can_v not_o have_v take_v a_o more_o effectual_a way_n than_o to_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o own_o example_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o settle_a contempt_n of_o all_o these_o vanity_n and_o prefer_v the_o true_a and_o durable_a felicity_n 3._o look_v inward_o to_o his_o godhead_n and_o spiritual_a perfection_n look_v upward_o to_o his_o present_a state_n of_o glory_n who_o have_v now_o all_o power_n give_v into_o his_o hand_n and_o be_v make_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n eph._n 1.22_o look_v forward_o to_o the_o day_n of_o his_o glorious_a appear_v when_o he_o shall_v come_v with_o all_o his_o celestial_a retinue_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o then_o you_o will_v see_v the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o christ_n if_o you_o prefer_v not_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a dignity_n yourselves_o you_o be_v uncapable_a of_o they_o and_o can_v be_v save_v but_o if_o you_o do_v you_o may_v see_v the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o know_v how_o
vain_a a_o bubble_n the_o honour_n of_o man_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n be_v will_v not_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o king_n of_o saint_n because_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o he_o that_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n heaven_n and_o earth_n will_v not_o despise_v the_o eternal_a jehovah_n because_o he_o wear_v not_o a_o silken_a coat_n and_o dwell_v not_o in_o the_o guild_a palace_n of_o a_o prince_n if_o earthly_a glory_n have_v be_v the_o high_a it_o have_v be_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o he_o have_v come_v to_o make_v we_o happy_a by_o the_o rich_a man_n way_n luk._n 16._o to_o be_v clothe_v in_o purple_a and_o silk_n and_o fare_v sumptuous_o every_o day_n then_o will_v he_o have_v lead_v we_o this_o way_n by_o his_o example_n but_o when_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o save_v we_o from_o the_o flesh_n and_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n the_o mean_n must_v be_v suit_v to_o the_o end_n obj._n xii_o but_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a thing_n to_o believe_v that_o person_n to_o be_v god_n incarnate_a and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n who_o suffer_v on_o a_o cross_n as_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o traitor_n that_o usurp_v the_o title_n of_o a_o king_n answ_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n have_v ever_o be_v the_o stumbling-block_n of_o the_o proud_a and_o worldly_a sort_n of_o man_n but_o it_o be_v the_o confidence_n and_o consolation_n of_o true_a believer_n for_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n but_o for_o we_o that_o he_o suffer_v even_o so_o be_v it_o prophesy_v of_o he_o isa_n 53.4_o sure_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o grief_n 7._o and_o carry_v our_o sorrow_n yet_o do_v we_o esteem_v he_o strike_v of_o god_n and_o afflict_a but_o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o with_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v all_o we_o like_v sheep_n have_v go_v astray_o we_o have_v every_o one_o turn_v to_o his_o own_o way_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o and_o it_o be_v impudent_a ingratitude_n to_o make_v those_o his_o suffering_n the_o occasion_n of_o our_o unbelief_n which_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o ourselves_o and_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o that_o cross_n which_o we_o lay_v upon_o he_o by_o our_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o labour_n to_o answer_v the_o slander_n of_o his_o accuser_n about_o his_o usurpation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n when_o they_o believe_v it_o not_o themselves_o he_o be_v above_o a_o worldly_a kingdom_n and_o it_o can_v be_v no_o blasphemy_n for_o he_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o have_v so_o full_o prove_v it_o by_o his_o work_n 2._o his_o suffering_n as_o a_o repute_a malefactor_n on_o a_o cross_n be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o patience_n for_o many_o a_o man_n can_v bear_v the_o corporal_a pain_n who_o can_v so_o far_o deny_v his_o honour_n as_o to_o bear_v the_o imputation_n of_o a_o crime_n for_o the_o innocent_a son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v never_o convict_v of_o sin_n to_o suffer_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o traitor_n be_v great_a condescension_n than_o to_o have_v suffer_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o innocent_a person_n 3._o and_o in_o all_o this_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o saviour_n of_o mankind_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o ransom_n for_o our_o sinful_a soul_n but_o also_o shall_v heal_v we_o of_o the_o overlove_v of_o life_n and_o honour_n by_o his_o example_n have_v not_o his_o self-denial_n and_o patience_n extend_v to_o the_o loss_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n both_o life_n itself_o and_o the_o reputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o perfect_a example_n of_o self-denial_n and_o patience_n unto_o we_o and_o then_o it_o have_v be_v unmeet_a for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n as_o the_o cure_n of_o our_o pride_n and_o love_n of_o life_n have_v christ_n come_v to_o deliver_v the_o jew_n from_o captivity_n or_o to_o make_v his_o follower_n great_a on_o earth_n as_o mahomet_n do_v he_o will_v have_v suit_v the_o mean_n to_o such_o a_o end_n but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o save_v man_n from_o pride_n and_o self-love_n and_o the_o esteem_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o patience_n and_o full_a obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o to_o place_v all_o their_o happiness_n in_o another_o life_n true_a reason_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o example_n so_o fit_a for_o this_o end_n as_o patient_a submission_n to_o the_o great_a suffering_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n then_o shall_v be_v our_o glory_n and_o not_o our_o stumbling-block_n or_o shame_n let_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n boast_v that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v hurt_v and_o to_o trample_v upon_o other_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n will_v rather_o boast_v that_o they_o can_v patient_o endure_v to_o be_v abuse_v as_o know_v that_o their_o pride_n and_o love_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o enemy_n which_o they_o be_v most_o concern_v in_o conquer_a obj._n xiii_o it_o be_v but_o a_o few_o mean_v unlearned_a person_n who_o believe_v in_o he_o at_o the_o first_o and_o it_o be_v not_o past_o a_o six_o part_n of_o the_o world_n that_o yet_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o of_o these_o few_o do_v it_o judicious_o and_o from_o their_o heart_n but_o because_o their_o king_n or_o parent_n or_o country_n be_v of_o that_o religion_n answ_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o number_n i_o have_v answer_v it_o before_o it_o be_v no_o great_a number_n comparative_o that_o be_v king_n or_o lord_n or_o learned_a man_n and_o true_o judicious_a and_o wise_a will_v you_o therefore_o set_a light_n by_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n excellent_a be_v seldom_o common_a the_o earth_n have_v more_o stone_n than_o gold_n or_o pearl_n know_v all_o those_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o see_v his_o work_n and_o have_v wise_a considerate_a honest_a heart_n to_o receive_v the_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o truth_n the_o great_a part_n be_v every_o where_o ignorant_a rash_a injudicious_a dishonest_a and_o carry_v away_o with_o prejudice_n fancy_n custom_n error_n and_o carnal_a interest_n if_o all_o man_n have_v mean_n in_o its_o own_o kind_a sufficient_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o believe_v to_o understand_v so_o much_o as_o god_n immediate_o require_v of_o they_o it_o be_v their_o fault_n who_o after_o this_o be_v ignorant_a and_o unbelieving_a and_o if_o it_o prove_v their_o misery_n let_v they_o thank_v themselves_o but_o yet_o christ_n will_v not_o leave_v the_o success_n of_o his_o undertake_n so_o far_o to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n as_o to_o be_v uncertain_a of_o his_o expect_a fruit_n he_o have_v his_o choose_a one_o throughout_o the_o world_n and_o will_v bring_v they_o effectual_o to_o faith_n and_o holiness_n to_o grace_n and_o glory_n though_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n do_v rage_n against_o it_o in_o they_o be_v his_o delight_n and_o they_o he_o will_v conform_v to_o his_o father_n will_n and_o restore_v they_o to_o his_o image_n 123._o and_o fit_v they_o to_o love_n and_o serve_v he_o here_o and_o enjoy_v he_o for_o ever_o and_o though_o they_o be_v not_o the_o great_a number_n they_o shall_v be_v the_o everlasting_a demonstration_n of_o his_o wisdom_n love_n and_o holiness_n and_o when_o you_o see_v all_o the_o world_n of_o more_o bless_a inhabitant_n you_o will_v see_v that_o the_o damn_a be_v the_o small_a number_n and_o the_o bless_a in_o all_o probability_n many_o million_o to_o one_o if_o the_o devil_n have_v the_o great_a number_n in_o this_o world_n god_n will_v have_v the_o great_a number_n in_o the_o rest_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o wise_a design_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o few_o in_o comparison_n shall_v be_v convert_v by_o his_o personal_a converse_n or_o teach_n and_o thousand_o may_v be_v sudden_o convert_v upon_o his_o ascension_n and_o the_o come_n down_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o because_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n be_v part_n of_o the_o article_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o his_o miracle_n which_o do_v convert_v man_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a before_o the_o multitude_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o because_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v his_o extraordinary_a witness_n and_o advocate_n on_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v give_v by_o he_o after_o he_o ascend_v into_o glory_n and_o he_o will_v have_v the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o conversion_n of_o man_n to_o faith_n and_o sanctity_n be_v not_o the_o
of_o all_o this_o bible_n uno_fw-la intuitu_fw-la in_o a_o perfect_a scheme_n as_o it_o be_v true_o intend_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n if_o you_o see_v all_o begin_v the_o divine_a unity_n and_o branch_n out_o itself_o into_o the_o trinity_n and_o thence_o into_o the_o trinity_n of_o relation_n and_o correlation_n and_o thence_o into_o the_o multiply_a branch_n of_o mercy_n and_o precept_n and_o all_o these_o accept_v and_o improve_v in_o duty_n and_o gratitude_n by_o man_n and_o return_v up_o in_o love_n to_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o unity_n again_o and_o all_o this_o in_o perfect_a order_n proportion_n and_o harmony_n you_o will_v see_v the_o most_o admirable_a perfect_a method_n that_o ever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o in_o the_o world_n the_o resemblance_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o circular_a motion_n of_o the_o humour_n and_o spirit_n in_o man_n body_n which_o be_v deliver_v on_o from_o vessel_n to_o vessel_n and_o perfect_v in_o all_o their_o motion_n i_o know_v there_o be_v many_o system_n and_o scheme_n attempt_v which_o show_v not_o this_o but_o that_o be_v because_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o method_n be_v so_o exceed_v great_a that_o it_o be_v yet_o but_o imperfect_o understand_v for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o may_v say_v as_o those_o that_o have_v make_v some_o progress_n in_o anatomy_n beyond_o their_o ancestor_n that_o they_o have_v no_o thought_n that_o they_o have_v yet_o discover_v all_o but_o rejoice_v in_o what_o they_o have_v discover_v which_o show_v they_o the_o hope_n and_o possibility_n of_o more_o so_o i_o be_o far_o from_o a_o perfect_a comprehension_n of_o this_o wonderful_a method_n of_o divinity_n but_o i_o have_v see_v that_o which_o true_o assure_v i_o that_o it_o excel_v all_o the_o art_n of_o philosopher_n and_o orator_n and_o that_o it_o be_v real_o a_o most_o beautiful_a frame_n and_o harmonious_a consort_n and_o that_o more_o be_v within_o my_o prospect_n than_o i_o be_o yet_o come_v to_o 4._o moreover_o it_o be_v christ_n who_o give_v all_o man_n all_o the_o gift_n they_o have_v to_o logician_n orator_n astronomer_n grammarian_n physician_n and_o musician_n etc._n etc._n what_o ever_o gift_n be_v suit_v to_o man_n just_a end_n and_o calling_n he_o bestow_v on_o they_o and_o to_o his_o apostle_n he_o give_v those_o gift_n which_o be_v most_o suitable_a to_o their_o work_n i_o do_v not_o undervalue_v the_o gift_n of_o nature_n or_o art_n in_o any_o i_o make_v it_o not_o with_o aristotle_n a_o argument_n for_o the_o contempt_n of_o music_n jupiter_fw-la neque_fw-la canere_fw-la neque_fw-la cytharam_fw-la pulsare_fw-la but_o i_o may_v say_v that_o as_o god_n have_v great_a excellency_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o great_a gift_n to_o give_v and_o such_o gift_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o first_o plant_v of_o the_o church_n he_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o as_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n he_o give_v to_o his_o minister_n ever_o since_o and_o such_o as_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o improvement_n of_o nature_n in_o low_a thing_n he_o give_v the_o philosopher_n and_o artist_n of_o the_o world_n object_n xvii_o the_o scripture_n have_v many_o contradiction_n in_o it_o in_o point_n of_o history_n chronology_n and_o other_o thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n answ_n nothing_o but_o ignorance_n make_v man_n think_v so_o understand_v once_o the_o true_a meaning_n and_o allow_v for_o the_o error_n of_o printer_n transcriber_n and_o translator_n and_o there_o will_v no_o such_o thing_n be_v find_v young_a student_n in_o all_o science_n think_v their_o book_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n which_o they_o can_v easy_o reconcile_v when_o they_o come_v to_o understand_v they_o book_n that_o have_v be_v so_o oft_o translate_v into_o so_o many_o language_n and_o the_o original_n and_o translation_n so_o oft_o transcribe_v may_v easy_o fall_v into_o some_o disagreement_n between_o the_o original_a and_o translation_n and_o the_o various_a copy_n may_v have_v divers_a inconsiderable_a verbal_a difference_n but_o all_o the_o world_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o in_o all_o these_o book_n there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n much_o less_o in_o such_o as_o our_o salvation_n rest_v on_o there_o be_v two_o opinion_n among_o christian_n about_o the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o entire_o and_o perfect_o the_o product_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v inspiration_n that_o there_o be_v no_o word_n in_o they_o which_o be_v not_o infallible_o true_a the_o other_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v promise_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o world_n the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o teach_v man_n to_o observe_v what_o ever_o christ_n command_v and_o true_o to_o deliver_v the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n and_o suffering_n and_o resurrection_n which_o they_o have_v do_v according_o but_o not_o to_o make_v they_o perfect_a and_o indefectible_a in_o every_o word_n which_o they_o shall_v speak_v or_o write_v no_o not_o about_o sacred_a thing_n but_o only_o in_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n but_o every_o chronological_a and_o historical_a narrative_a be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o life_n i_o think_v that_o the_o first_o opinion_n be_v right_a and_o that_o no_o one_o error_n or_o contradiction_n in_o any_o matter_n can_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o all_o be_v agree_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v so_o of_o divine_a inspiration_n as_o yet_o in_o the_o manner_n and_o method_n and_o style_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o various_a ability_n of_o the_o writer_n and_o consequent_o of_o their_o humane_a imperfection_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a mistake_n which_o infidel_n deceive_v themselves_o by_o to_o think_v that_o the_o write_n can_v be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n unless_o the_o book_n in_o order_n and_o style_n and_o all_o other_o excellency_n be_v as_o perfect_a as_o god_n himself_o can_v make_v it_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v less_o logical_a than_o aristotle_n and_o less_o oratorical_a and_o grammatical_a and_o exact_a in_o word_n than_o demosthenes_n or_o cicero_n it_o will_v be_v no_o disparagement_n to_o the_o certain_a truth_n of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o david_n must_v be_v the_o able_a man_n for_o strength_n nor_o that_o he_o must_v use_v the_o weapon_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v most_o excellent_a if_o he_o be_v call_v of_o god_n to_o overcome_v goliath_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o he_o be_v call_v of_o god_n he_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o less_o excellence_n of_o strength_n and_o weapon_n than_o other_o man_n and_o so_o there_o may_v be_v some_o real_a weakness_n not_o culpable_a in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o several_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n in_o point_n of_o style_n and_o method_n which_o shall_v show_v the_o more_o that_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o do_v great_a thing_n by_o little_a humane_a excellency_n of_o speech_n and_o yet_o that_o humane_a excellency_n be_v never_o the_o more_o to_o be_v dislike_v no_o more_o than_o a_o sword_n because_o david_n use_v but_o a_o sling_n and_o stone_n if_o amos_n have_v one_o degree_n of_o part_n and_o jeremiah_n another_o and_o isaiah_n another_o etc._n etc._n god_n do_v not_o equal_v they_o all_o by_o inspiration_n but_o only_o cause_v every_o man_n to_o speak_v his_o save_a truth_n in_o their_o own_o language_n and_o dialect_n and_o style_n as_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n be_v make_v of_o the_o common_a earth_n though_o god_n breathe_v into_o he_o a_o rational_a soul_n and_o so_o be_v the_o body_n of_o every_o saint_n even_o such_o as_o may_v partake_v of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o parent_n so_o scripture_n have_v its_o style_n and_o language_n and_o method_n so_o from_o god_n as_o we_o have_v our_o body_n even_o so_o that_o there_o may_v be_v in_o they_o the_o effect_n of_o humane_a imperfection_n and_o it_o be_v not_o so_o extraordinary_o of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v all_o be_v so_o from_o god_n as_o to_o be_v suitable_a to_o its_o proper_a end_n but_o the_o body_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o extraordinary_o from_o he_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o it_o be_v as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a and_o exact_a in_o every_o kind_n of_o ornament_n and_o perfection_n the_o truth_n and_o goodness_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o the_o power_n manifest_v in_o it_o and_o in_o these_o it_o do_v indeed_o excel_v so_o that_o variety_n of_o gift_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o
all_o that_o the_o world_n can_v possible_o afford_v you_o will_v not_o make_v death_n the_o more_o welcome_a nor_o less_o terrible_a to_o you_o nor_o abate_v a_o jot_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n it_o be_v as_o comfortable_a to_o die_v poor_a as_o rich_a and_o a_o life_n of_o pain_n and_o weakness_n and_o persecution_n will_v end_v as_o pleasant_o as_o a_o life_n of_o pomp_n and_o wealth_n and_o pleasure_n if_o it_o be_v no_o unreasonable_a motion_n of_o a_o physician_n to_o tell_v you_o of_o blood-letting_n vomit_v parge_v and_o strict_a diet_n to_o save_v your_o life_n nor_o any_o hard_a deal_n in_o your_o parent_n to_o set_v you_o many_o year_n to_o school_n to_o endure_v both_o the_o labour_n of_o learning_n and_o the_o rod_n and_o after_o that_o to_o set_v you_o to_o a_o seven_o year_n apprentice-ship_n and_o all_o this_o for_o thing_n of_o a_o transitory_a nature_n since_o god_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v as_o too_o severe_a if_o he_o train_v you_o up_o for_o heaven_n more_o strict_o and_o in_o a_o more_o suffer_a way_n than_o the_o flesh_n desire_v either_o you_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o future_a life_n of_o retribution_n or_o you_o do_v not_o if_o not_o the_o forego_n evidence_n must_v first_o convince_v you_o before_o you_o will_v be_v fit_a to_o debate_v the_o case_n whether_o suffering_n be_v for_o your_o hurt_n or_o benefit_n but_o if_o you_o do_v believe_v a_o life_n to_o come_v you_o must_v needs_o believe_v that_o its_o concernment_n weigh_v down_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o fleshly_a interest_n in_o this_o world_n as_o much_o as_o a_o mountain_n will_v weigh_v down_o a_o feather_n and_o then_o do_v but_o further_o bethink_v yourselves_o impartial_o whether_o a_o life_n of_o prosperity_n or_o of_o adversity_n be_v the_o like_a to_o tempt_v you_o into_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o wean_v away_o your_o thought_n and_o desire_n from_o the_o heavenly_a felicity_n judge_v but_o right_o first_o of_o your_o own_o interest_n and_o you_o will_v be_v fit_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n obj._n xxi_o christ_n seem_v to_o calculate_v all_o his_o precept_n to_o the_o poor_a sort_n of_o people_n state_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o hope_v that_o king_n and_o noble_n will_v be_v christian_n if_o man_n think_v as_o hardly_o of_o the_o rich_a as_o he_o do_v and_o take_v they_o to_o be_v so_o bad_a and_o their_o salvation_n so_o difficult_a how_o will_v they_o ever_o honour_v their_o king_n and_o governor_n and_o if_o all_o man_n must_v suffer_v such_o as_o abuse_v and_o injure_v they_o and_o must_v turn_v the_o other_o cheek_n to_o he_o that_o strike_v they_o and_o give_v he_o their_o coat_n who_o take_v away_o their_o cloak_n what_o use_n will_v there_o be_v for_o magistrate_n and_o judicature_n ans_fw-fr 1._o christ_n fit_v his_o precept_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o all_o man_n but_o in_o so_o do_v he_o must_v needs_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o overloving_a this_o world_n as_o be_v the_o most_o mortal_a sin_n which_o he_o come_v to_o cure_v and_o he_o must_v needs_o tell_v they_o what_o a_o dangerous_a temptation_n a_o flesh-pleasing_a prosperous_a state_n be_v to_o the_o most_o to_o entice_v they_o to_o this_o pernicious_a sin_n have_v he_o silence_v such_o necessary_a truth_n as_o these_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v their_o saviour_n for_o how_o shall_v he_o save_v they_o from_o sin_n if_o he_o conceal_v the_o evil_a and_o the_o danger_n of_o it_o if_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n be_v so_o great_a that_o riches_n and_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n be_v ordinary_o make_v the_o occasion_n of_o man_n perdition_n must_v christ_n be_v christ_n and_o never_o tell_v they_o of_o it_o and_o be_v he_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o tell_v they_o the_o truth_n or_o they_o rather_o who_o create_v these_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n to_o themselves_o christ_n teach_v man_n to_o honour_v a_o sacred_a office_n such_o as_o magistracy_n be_v without_o honour_v vice_n or_o betray_v sinner_n by_o conceal_v their_o temptation_n and_o to_o holy_a faithful_a ruler_n he_o teach_v we_o to_o give_v a_o double_a honour_n they_o that_o will_v prove_v that_o most_o of_o the_o great_a and_o wealthy_a shall_v be_v save_v must_v prove_v first_o that_o most_o of_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o mortify_v heavenly_a person_n and_o the_o fit_a proof_n of_o that_o must_v be_v by_o show_v we_o the_o man_n that_o be_v so_o 2._o the_o law_n of_o christ_n require_v every_o soul_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o not_o resist_v and_o this_o not_o only_o for_o fear_n of_o their_o wrath_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o to_o pay_v honour_n and_o custom_n to_o all_o who_o it_o be_v due_a to_o and_o what_o more_o can_v be_v desire_v for_o the_o support_n of_o government_n 3._o yea_o nothing_o more_o tend_v to_o the_o comfort_n and_o quietness_n of_o governor_n than_o the_o obedience_n of_o those_o precept_n of_o patience_n and_o peace_n which_o the_o objection_n quarrel_v with_o if_o subject_n will_v love_v each_o other_o as_o themselves_o and_o forgive_v injury_n and_o love_v their_o enemy_n what_o can_v be_v more_o joyful_a to_o a_o faithful_a governor_n and_o to_o the_o question_n what_o use_n will_v there_o be_v then_o of_o judicature_n i_o answer_v they_o will_v be_v useful_a to_o good_a man_n for_o their_o protection_n against_o the_o injury_n of_o the_o bad_a where_o we_o be_v but_o defendant_n and_o also_o in_o case_n where_o it_o be_v not_o want_v of_o love_n but_o of_o knowledge_n which_o cause_v the_o controversy_n and_o when_o no_o fit_a arbitration_n can_v decide_v it_o and_o they_o will_v be_v useful_a among_o contentious_a person_n for_o all_o man_n be_v not_o true_a believer_n the_o most_o will_v be_v ordinary_o the_o worst_a as_o we_o will_v not_o be_v fornicator_n thief_n perjure_a etc._n etc._n lest_o you_o shall_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n be_v the_o law_n against_o such_o offender_n so_o we_o will_v not_o be_v revengeful_a and_o contentious_a lest_o you_o shall_v say_v to_o what_o end_n be_v judicature_n the_o law_n be_v to_o prevent_v offence_n by_o threaten_a penalty_n and_o that_o be_v the_o happy_a commonwealth_n where_o the_o law_n do_v most_o without_o the_o judge_n and_o where_o judicature_n have_v least_o employment_n for_o there_o be_v none_o to_o be_v expect_v on_o earth_n so_o happy_a where_o mere_a love_n of_o virtue_n and_o of_o one_o another_o will_v prevent_v the_o use_n both_o of_o penal_a law_n and_o judicature_n 4._o and_o it_o be_v but_o selfishness_n and_o contentiousness_n and_o private_a revenge_n which_o christ_n forbid_v and_o not_o the_o necessary_a defence_n or_o vindication_n of_o any_o talon_n which_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o our_o trust_n so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o preservation_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o peace_n 5._o and_o that_o christ_n foreknow_v what_o prince_n and_o state_n will_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n be_v manifest_a 1._o in_o all_o his_o prophet_n who_o have_v foretell_v it_o that_o king_n shall_v be_v our_o nurse_n father_n etc._n etc._n 2._o in_o that_o christ_n prophesy_v himself_o that_o when_o he_o be_v lift_v up_o he_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n to_o he_o 3._o by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o john_n who_o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n 2._o obj._n xxii_o but_o it_o be_v the_o obscurity_n of_o all_o those_o phophecy_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o be_v never_o like_a to_o be_v fulfil_v almost_o all_o your_o expositor_n differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o john_n revelation_n and_o the_o call_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o bring_v in_o all_o the_o gentile_n to_o their_o subjection_n seem_v to_o be_v plain_o prophesy_v of_o which_o be_v never_o like_a to_o come_v to_o pass_v answ_n 1._o prophecy_n be_v seldom_o a_o rule_n of_o life_n but_o a_o encouragement_n to_o hope_n and_o a_o confirmation_n to_o faith_n when_o they_o be_v fulfil_v and_o therefore_o if_o the_o particularity_n be_v dark_a and_o understand_v by_o few_o so_o the_o general_a scope_n be_v understand_v it_o shall_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o offence_n or_o wonder_n it_o be_v doctrine_n and_o precept_n and_o promise_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o daily_a food_n of_o faith_n 2._o if_o no_o man_n can_v hitherto_o true_o say_v that_o any_o one_o promise_n or_o prophecy_n have_v fail_v why_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o hereafter_o they_o will_v fail_v what_o though_o the_o thing_n seem_v improbable_a to_o we_o they_o be_v never_o the_o unlike_a to_o be_v accomplish_v by_o god_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o so_o many_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n
another_o life_n and_o be_v make_v only_o to_o be_v happy_a in_o that_o knowledge_n love_n and_o fruition_n of_o god_n which_o the_o gospel_n most_o effectual_o lead_v you_o to_o con_v 21._o mark_v well_o the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n himself_o both_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o success_n of_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n and_o mark_v how_o exact_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v con_v 22._o let_v no_o pretence_n of_o humility_n tempt_v you_o to_o debase_v humane_a nature_n below_o its_o proper_a excellency_n lest_o thence_o you_o be_v tempt_v to_o think_v it_o uncapable_a of_o the_o everlasting_a sight_n and_o fruition_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n way_n of_o destroy_v be_v oftentimes_o by_o over_n the_o proud_a devil_n will_v help_v you_o to_o be_v very_o humble_a and_o help_v you_o to_o deny_v the_o excellency_n of_o reason_n and_o natural_a freewill_n and_o all_o supernatural_a inclination_n when_o he_o can_v make_v use_n of_o it_o to_o persuade_v you_o that_o man_n be_v but_o a_o subtle_a sort_n of_o bruit_n and_o have_v a_o soul_n but_o gradual_o different_a from_o sensitives_n and_o so_o be_v not_o make_v for_o another_o life_n con_v 23._o yet_o come_v to_o christ_n as_o humble_a learner_n and_o not_o as_o arrogant_a self-conceited_a censurer_n and_o think_v not_o that_o you_o be_v capable_a of_o understand_v every_o thing_n as_o soon_o as_o you_o hear_v it_o con_v 24._o judge_v not_o of_o the_o main_a cause_n of_o christianity_n or_o of_o particular_a text_n or_o point_n by_o sudden_a hasty_a thought_n and_o glance_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o business_n to_o be_v cursory_o do_v but_o allow_v it_o your_o most_o deliberate_a sober_a study_n your_o most_o diligent_a labour_n and_o such_o time_n and_o patience_n as_o reason_n may_v tell_v you_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o learner_n in_o so_o great_a a_o cause_n con_v 25._o call_v not_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n to_o the_o trial_n in_o a_o case_n of_o melancholy_n and_o natural_a incapacity_n but_o stay_v till_o you_o be_v fit_a to_o perform_v the_o search_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o common_a cheat_n of_o satan_n to_o persuade_v poor_a weak_a and_o melancholy_a person_n that_o have_v but_o half_a the_o use_n of_o their_o understanding_n to_o go_v then_o to_o try_v the_o christian_a religion_n when_o they_o can_v scarce_o cast_v up_o a_o intricate_a account_n nor_o be_v fit_a to_o judge_v of_o any_o great_a and_o difficult_a thing_n and_o then_o he_o have_v a_o advantage_n to_o confound_v they_o and_o fill_v they_o with_o blasphemous_a and_o unbelieving_a thought_n and_o if_o not_o to_o shake_v their_o habitual_a faith_n yet_o great_o to_o perplex_v they_o and_o disturb_v their_o peace_n the_o sound_a wit_n and_o most_o compose_v be_v fit_a for_o so_o great_a a_o task_n con_v 26._o when_o upon_o sober_a trial_n you_o have_v discern_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o christian_a verity_n record_v what_o you_o have_v find_v true_a and_o judge_v not_o the_o next_o time_n against_o those_o evidence_n till_o you_o have_v equal_a opportunity_n for_o a_o full_a consideration_n of_o they_o in_o this_o case_n the_o tempter_n much_o abuse_v many_o injudicious_a soul_n when_o by_o good_a advice_n and_o sober_a meditation_n they_o have_v see_v the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n in_o satisfy_a clearness_n he_o will_v after_o surprise_v they_o when_o their_o mind_n be_v dark_a or_o their_o thought_n more_o scatter_v or_o the_o former_a evidence_n be_v out_o of_o mind_n and_o push_v they_o on_o sudden_o then_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o immortality_n and_o of_o the_o christian_a cause_n that_o what_o he_o can_v get_v by_o truth_n of_o argument_n he_o may_v get_v by_o the_o incapacity_n of_o the_o disputant_n as_o if_o a_o man_n that_o once_o see_v a_o mountain_n some_o mile_n distant_a from_o he_o in_o a_o clear_a day_n shall_v be_v tempt_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v deceive_v because_o he_o see_v it_o not_o in_o a_o misty_a day_n or_o when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o valley_n or_o within_o the_o house_n or_o as_o if_o a_o man_n that_o in_o many_o day_n hard_a study_n have_v cast_v up_o a_o intricate_a large_a account_n and_o set_v it_o right_n under_o his_o hand_n shall_v be_v call_v sudden_o to_o give_v up_o the_o same_o account_n anew_o without_o look_v on_o that_o which_o he_o before_o cast_v up_o when_o as_o if_o his_o first_o account_n be_v lose_v he_o must_v have_v equal_a time_n and_o help_n and_o fitness_n before_o he_o can_v set_v it_o as_o right_v again_o take_v it_o not_o therefore_o as_o any_o disparagement_n to_o the_o christian_a truth_n if_o you_o can_v on_o a_o sudden_a give_v yourselves_o so_o satisfactory_a a_o account_n of_o it_o as_o former_o in_o more_o clearness_n and_o by_o great_a study_n you_o have_v do_v con_v 27._o gratify_v not_o satan_n so_o much_o as_o to_o question_v well_o resolve_v point_n as_o oft_o as_o he_o will_v move_v you_o to_o it_o though_o you_o must_v prove_v all_o thing_n till_o as_o learning_n you_o come_v to_o understand_v they_o in_o their_o proper_a evidence_n time_n and_o order_n yet_o you_o must_v record_v and_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o you_o have_v prove_v and_o not_o suffer_v the_o devil_n to_o put_v you_o to_o the_o answer_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o question_n over_o and_o over_o as_o often_o as_o he_o please_v this_o be_v to_o give_v he_o our_o time_n and_o to_o admit_v he_o to_o debate_v his_o cause_n with_o we_o by_o temptation_n as_o frequent_o as_o he_o will_v which_o you_o will_v not_o allow_v to_o a_o ruffian_n to_o the_o debauch_v of_o your_o wife_n or_o servant_n and_o you_o provoke_v god_n to_o give_v you_o up_o to_o error_n when_o no_o resolution_n will_v serve_v your_o turn_n after_o just_a resolution_n the_o tempter_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o not_o dispute_v with_o as_o a_o troublesome_a fellow_n that_o will_v interrupt_v we_o in_o our_o work_n con_v 28._o where_o you_o find_v your_o own_o understanding_n insufficient_a have_v recourse_n for_o help_v to_o some_o true_o wise_a judicious_a divine_a not_o to_o every_o weak_a christian_a nor_o unskilful_a minister_n who_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v in_o his_o own_o religion_n but_o to_o those_o that_o have_v thorough_o study_v it_o themselves_o you_o may_v meet_v with_o many_o difficulty_n in_o theology_n and_o in_o the_o text_n which_o you_o think_v can_v never_o be_v well_o solve_v which_o be_v nothing_o to_o they_o that_o understand_v the_o thing_n no_o novice_n in_o the_o study_n of_o logic_n astronomy_n geometry_n or_o any_o art_n or_o science_n will_v think_v that_o every_o difficulty_n that_o he_o meet_v with_o do_v prove_v that_o his_o author_n be_v deceive_v unless_o he_o be_v able_a to_o resolve_v it_o of_o himself_o but_o he_o will_v ask_v his_o tutor_n or_o some_o one_o verse_v in_o those_o matter_n to_o resolve_v it_o and_o then_o he_o will_v see_v that_o his_o ignorance_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o his_o doubt_n con_v 29._o labour_v faithful_o to_o receive_v all_o holy_a truth_n with_o a_o practical_a intent_n and_o to_o work_v they_o on_o your_o heart_n according_a to_o their_o nature_n weight_n and_o use_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v scientia_fw-la affectiva_fw-la practica_fw-la a_o doctrine_n for_o head_n heart_n and_o life_n and_o if_o that_o which_o be_v make_v for_o the_o heart_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o root_v there_o it_o be_v half_o reject_v while_o it_o seem_v receive_v and_o be_v not_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n and_o soil_n if_o you_o be_v yet_o in_o doubt_n of_o any_o of_o the_o supernatural_a verity_n admit_v those_o truth_n to_o your_o heart_n which_o you_o be_v convince_v of_o else_o you_o be_v false_a to_o they_o and_o to_o yourselves_o and_o forfeit_v all_o further_a help_n of_o grace_n object_n this_o be_v but_o a_o trick_n of_o deceit_n to_o engage_v the_o affection_n when_o you_o want_v argument_n to_o convince_v the_o judgement_n perit_n omne_fw-la judicium_fw-la cum_fw-la res_fw-la transit_fw-la in_o affectum_fw-la answ_n when_o the_o affection_n be_v inordinate_a and_o overruns_a the_o judgement_n this_o say_n have_v some_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v most_o false_a as_o of_o ordinate_a affection_n which_o follow_v sound_a judgement_n for_o by_o suscitation_n of_o the_o faculty_n such_o affection_n great_o help_v the_o judgement_n ultim_fw-la and_o judgement_n be_v but_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o guide_v the_o man_n and_o it_o be_v but_o the_o passage_n to_o the_o will_n where_o humane_a act_n be_v more_o complete_a if_o your_o wife_n be_v teach_v that_o conjugal_a love_n be_v due_a to_o her_o husband_n and_o your_o child_n that_o filial_a love_n and_o reverence_n be_v due_a to_o his_o father_n such_o affection_n will_v not_o blind_v their_o judgement_n but_o contrary_o they_o do_v
not_o sincere_o receive_v these_o precept_n if_o they_o let_v they_o not_o into_o the_o heart_n and_o answer_v they_o not_o with_o these_o affection_n and_o here_o be_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o honest_a sanctify_a ploughman_n and_o of_o a_o carnal_a unsanctified_a lord_n or_o doctor_n the_o one_o open_v his_o heart_n to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o receive_v and_o faithful_o admit_v it_o to_o its_o proper_a work_n and_o so_o embrace_v it_o practical_o and_o in_o love_n and_o therefore_o hold_v it_o fast_o as_o a_o radicate_v experience_a truth_n when_o he_o can_v answer_v all_o cavil_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o it_o the_o other_o superficial_o receive_v it_o into_o the_o brain_n by_o mere_a speculation_n and_o treacherous_o shut_v up_o his_o heart_n against_o it_o and_o never_o give_v it_o real_a root_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trial_n lose_v that_o unsound_a superficial_a belief_n which_o he_o have_v god_n bless_v his_o word_n to_o the_o heart_n that_o honest_o and_o practical_o receive_v it_o rather_o than_o to_o he_o that_o imprison_v it_o in_o unrighteousness_n con_v 30._o last_o if_o yet_o any_o doubt_n remain_v bethink_v you_o which_o be_v the_o sure_a side_n which_o you_o may_v follow_v with_o least_o danger_n and_o where_o you_o be_v certain_a to_o undergo_v the_o small_a l●ss_n it_o be_v pity_n that_o any_o shall_v hesitate_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o evidence_n and_o weight_n and_o shall_v think_v with_o any_o doubtfulness_n of_o christianity_n as_o a_o uncertain_a thing_n but_o yet_o true_a believer_n may_v have_v cause_n to_o say_v lord_n help_v our_o unbelief_n and_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o all_o doubt_a will_v not_o prove_v the_o unsoundness_n of_o belief_n the_o true_a mark_n to_o know_v when_o faith_n be_v true_a and_o save_a notwithstanding_o all_o such_o doubt_n be_v the_o measure_n of_o its_o prevalency_n with_o our_o heart_n and_o life_n that_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v true_a and_o save_a notwithstanding_o all_o doubt_n which_o habitual_o possess_v we_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o resolve_v the_o will_n to_o prefer_v the_o please_a of_o he_o and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n before_o all_o the_o treasure_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n and_o cause_v we_o in_o our_o endeavour_n to_o live_v according_o and_o that_o faith_n be_v unsound_a which_o will_v not_o do_v this_o how_o well_o soever_o it_o may_v be_v defend_v by_o dispute_n therefore_o at_o least_o for_o the_o resolve_v of_o your_o will_n for_o choice_n and_o practice_n if_o you_o must_v doubt_v yet_o consider_v which_o be_v the_o safe_a side_n if_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o will_v bring_v believer_n to_o grace_n and_o glory_n and_o you_o be_v sure_a there_o be_v nothing_o but_o 12._o transitory_a trifle_n which_o you_o can_v possible_o lose_v by_o such_o a_o choice_n for_o certain_o his_o precept_n be_v holy_a and_o safe_a and_o no_o man_n can_v imagine_v rational_o that_o they_o can_v endanger_v the_o soul_n but_o if_o you_o reject_v he_o by_o infidelity_n you_o be_v lose_v for_o ever_o for_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n but_o a_o fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o fire_n which_o shall_v devour_v his_o adversary_n for_o ever_o there_o be_v no_o other_o saviour_n for_o he_o who_o final_o refuse_v the_o only_a saviour_n and_o if_o you_o doubt_v whether_o faith_n may_v not_o prove_v a_o error_n you_o can_v never_o see_v any_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o it_o shall_v prove_v a_o hindrance_n to_o your_o salvation_n for_o salvation_n itself_o be_v a_o unknown_a thing_n to_o most_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o no_o man_n can_v well_o think_v that_o a_o man_n who_o be_v lead_v by_o a_o age_n of_o such_o miracle_n so_o credible_o report_v to_o we_o to_o believe_v in_o one_o that_o lead_v up_o soul_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n can_v ever_o perish_v for_o be_v so_o lead_v to_o such_o a_o guide_n and_o then_o lead_v by_o he_o in_o so_o good_a a_o way_n and_o to_o so_o good_a a_o end_n and_o thus_o reader_n i_o have_v faithful_o tell_v thou_o what_o reason_v my_o own_o soul_n have_v have_v about_o its_o way_n to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o what_o inquiry_n it_o have_v make_v into_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n i_o have_v go_v to_o my_o own_o heart_n for_o those_o reason_n which_o have_v satisfy_v myself_o and_o not_o to_o my_o book_n from_o which_o i_o have_v be_v many_o year_n separate_v for_o such_o as_o satisfy_v other_o man_n and_o not_o myself_o i_o have_v tell_v thou_o what_o i_o believe_v and_o why_o yet_o other_o man_n reason_n perhaps_o may_v give_v more_o light_n to_o other_o though_o these_o be_v they_o that_o have_v prevail_v most_o with_o i_o therefore_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n that_o will_v have_v more_o say_v to_o peruse_v especial_o these_o excellent_a book_n camero_n praelectiones_fw-la de_fw-la ver●o_fw-la dei_fw-la with_o the_o thesis_n salmurienses_n and_o sedanenses_n on_o that_o subject_n grotius_n de_fw-fr veritate_fw-la religionis_fw-la christianae_n marsilius_n ficinus_fw-la de_fw-fr relig._n christ_n cum_fw-la notis_fw-la lud._n crocii_n lodovicus_n vives_n de_fw-mi verit._n fid._n christ_n phil._n morney_n du_fw-fr plessis_n de_fw-fr verit._n fid._n christ_n john_n goodwin_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n campanella_n savonarola_n triumphus_fw-la crucis_fw-la both_o excellent_a book_n except_v the_o error_n of_o their_o time_n raymundus_n de_fw-fr sabundis_fw-la his_o theologia_n naturalis_fw-la micrelli_n ethnophronius_n a_o excellent_a book_n raymundus_n lullius_n articul_n fid._n alexander_n gill_n out_o of_o he_o on_o the_o creed_n mr._n stillingfleet_n origines_fw-la sacrae_fw-la a_o late_a and_o very_o worthy_a labour_n dr._n jackson_n on_o the_o creed_n mr._n vincent_n hatecliffe_n aut_fw-la deus_fw-la aut_fw-la nihil_fw-la for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o religion_n pass_v by_o lessius_fw-la parson_n and_o abundance_n more_o and_o common_a place-book_n which_o many_o of_o they_o treat_v very_o well_o on_o this_o subject_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_n augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o eusebii_n preparatio_fw-la &_o demonstratio_fw-la evangelica_n be_v the_o full_a and_o almost_o all_o of_o they_o have_v somewhat_o to_o this_o use_n as_o justin_n m._n athenagoras_n tatianus_n tertullian_n clemens_n alexand._n origen_n against_o celsus_n etc._n etc._n cyprian_n lactantius_n athanasius_n basile_n gr._n nazianzen_n nyssen_n etc._n etc._n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o humble_o thank_v the_o heavenly_a majesty_n for_o the_o advantage_n which_o my_o education_n give_v i_o for_o the_o timely_a reception_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o temptation_n and_o difficulty_n have_v so_o often_o call_v i_o to_o clear_v my_o ground_n and_o try_v the_o evidence_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o i_o have_v first_o receive_v upon_o the_o commendation_n of_o my_o parent_n that_o i_o have_v long_o think_v no_o subject_n more_o worthy_a of_o my_o most_o serious_a faithful_a search_n and_o have_v wonder_v at_o the_o great_a number_n of_o christian_n who_o can_v spend_v their_o life_n in_o study_v the_o superstructure_n and_o wrangle_v about_o many_o small_a uncertainty_n to_o the_o great_a disturbance_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o find_v no_o more_o need_n to_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n in_o this_o enquiry_n i_o have_v most_o clear_o to_o my_o full_a satisfaction_n discern_v all_o those_o natural_a evidence_n for_o godliness_n or_o holiness_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n and_o i_o have_v discern_v the_o congruous_a superstruction_n and_o connection_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n thereunto_o i_o have_v find_v by_o unquestionable_a experience_n the_o sinful_a and_o deprave_a state_n of_o man_n and_o i_o have_v discern_v the_o admirable_a suitableness_n of_o the_o remedy_n to_o the_o malady_n i_o have_v also_o discern_v the_o attestation_n of_o god_n in_o the_o grand_a evidence_n the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o advocate_n or_o agent_n of_o jesus_n christ_n viz._n 1._o the_o antecedent_n evidence_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n lead_v unto_o christ_n 2._o the_o inherent_a constituent_a evidence_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o christ_n the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o doctrine_n 3._o the_o concomitant_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n in_o the_o life_n resurrection_n and_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o abundant_a miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o his_o disciple_n through_o the_o world_n 4._o the_o subsequent_a evidence_n in_o the_o success_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o true_a sanctification_n of_o million_o of_o soul_n by_o the_o powerful_a efficacy_n of_o divine_a co-operation_n i_o have_v spend_v most_o
far_o and_o follow_v they_o too_o long_o o_o that_o it_o have_v be_v less_o though_o i_o must_v thankful_o acknowledge_v that_o mercy_n do_v early_o show_v i_o their_o deceit_n and_o turn_v my_o inquire_a thought_n to_o thou_o to_o thou_o i_o resign_v myself_o for_o i_o be_o thou_o own_o to_o thou_o i_o subject_a all_o the_o power_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o thou_o be_v my_o rightful_a sovereign_a governor_n from_o thou_o i_o thankful_o accept_v of_o all_o the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o my_o life_n 19_o in_o thou_o i_o expect_v my_o true_a felicity_n and_o content_n to_o know_v thou_o and_o love_v thou_o and_o delight_n in_o thou_o must_v be_v my_o blessedness_n or_o i_o must_v have_v none_o the_o little_a taste_n of_o this_o sweetness_n which_o my_o thirsty_a soul_n have_v have_v do_v tell_v i_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o real_a joy_n i_o feel_v that_o thou_o have_v make_v my_o mind_n to_o know_v thou_o and_o i_o feel_v thou_o have_v make_v my_o heart_n to_o love_v thou_o my_o tongue_n to_o praise_v thou_o and_o all_o that_o i_o be_o and_o have_v to_o serve_v thou_o and_o even_o in_o the_o pant_a languish_a desire_n and_o motion_n of_o my_o soul_n i_o find_v that_o thou_o and_o only_o thou_o be_v its_o rest_a place_n and_o though_o love_n do_v now_o but_o search_n and_o pray_v and_o cry_v and_o weep_v and_o be_v reach_v upward_o but_o can_v reach_v the_o glorious_a light_n the_o bless_a knowledge_n the_o perfect_a love_n for_o which_o it_o long_v yet_o by_o its_o eye_n its_o aim_n its_o motion_n its_o moan_n its_o groan_n i_o know_v its_o meaning_n where_o it_o will_v be_v and_o i_o know_v its_o end_n my_o displace_v soul_n will_v never_o be_v well_o till_o it_o come_v near_o to_o thou_o till_o it_o know_v thou_o better_o till_o it_o love_v thou_o more_o it_o love_v itself_o and_o justify_v that_o self_n love_n when_o it_o can_v love_v thou_o it_o loathe_v itself_o and_o be_v weary_a of_o itself_o as_o a_o lifeless_a burden_n when_o it_o feel_v no_o pant_n after_o thou_o be_v thou_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o most_o solitary_a desert_n it_o will_v seek_v thou_o or_o in_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o will_v make_v after_o thou_o thy_o presence_n make_v a_o crowd_n a_o church_n thy_o converse_n make_v a_o closet_n or_o solitary_a wood_n or_o field_n to_o be_v kin_n to_o the_o angelical_a chore._n the_o creature_n be_v dead_a if_o thou_o be_v not_o its_o life_n and_o ugly_a if_o thou_o be_v not_o its_o beauty_n and_o insignificant_a if_o thou_o be_v not_o its_o sense_n the_o soul_n be_v deform_v which_o be_v without_o thy_o image_n and_o lifeless_a which_o live_v not_o in_o love_n to_o thou_o if_o love_n be_v not_o its_o pulse_n and_o prayer_n and_o praise_n its_o constant_a breath_n the_o mind_n be_v unlearned_a which_o read_v not_o thy_o name_n on_o all_o the_o world_n and_o see_v not_o holiness_n to_o the_o lord_n engrave_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o every_o creature_n he_o dote_v that_o doubt_v of_o thy_o be_v or_o perfection_n and_o he_o dream_v who_o do_v not_o live_v to_o thou_o o_o let_v i_o have_v no_o other_o portion_n no_o reason_n no_o love_n no_o life_n but_o what_o be_v devote_v to_o thou_o employ_v on_o thou_o and_o for_o thou_o here_o and_o shall_v be_v perfect_v in_o thou_o the_o only_a perfect_a final_a object_n for_o evermore_o upon_o the_o holy_a altar_n erect_v by_o thy_o son_n and_o by_o his_o hand_n and_o his_o mediation_n i_o humble_o devote_v and_o offer_v thou_o this_o heart_n o_o that_o i_o can_v say_v with_o great_a feeling_n this_o flame_a love_a long_a heart_n but_o the_o sacred_a fire_n which_o must_v kindle_v on_o my_o sacrifice_n must_v come_v from_o thou_o it_o will_v not_o else_o ascend_v unto_o thou_o let_v it_o consume_v this_o dross_n so_o the_o noble_a part_n may_v know_v its_o home_n all_o that_o i_o can_v say_v to_o commend_v it_o to_o thy_o acceptance_n be_v that_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v wash_v in_o precious_a blood_n and_o that_o there_o be_v something_o in_o it_o that_o be_v thy_o own_o it_o still_o look_v towards_o thou_o and_o groan_v to_o thou_o and_o follow_v after_o thou_o and_o will_v be_v content_a with_o gold_n and_o mirth_n and_o honour_n and_o such_o inferior_a foolery_n no_o more_o it_o lie_v at_o thy_o door_n and_o will_v be_v entertain_v or_o perish_v though_o alas_o it_o love_v thou_o not_o as_o it_o will_v i_o bold_o say_v it_o belong_v to_o love_v thou_o it_o love_v to_o love_v thou_o it_o seek_v it_o crave_v no_o great_a blessedness_n than_o perfect_a endless_a mutual_a love_n it_o be_v vow_v to_o thou_o even_o to_o thou_o alone_o and_o will_v never_o take_v up_o with_o shadow_n more_o but_o be_v resolve_v to_o lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n and_o despair_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v its_o rest_n and_o joy_n it_o hate_v itself_o for_o love_v thou_o no_o more_o account_v no_o want_n deformity_n shame_n or_o pain_n so_o great_a and_o grievous_a a_o calamity_n for_o thou_o the_o glorious_a bless_a god_n it_o be_v that_o i_o come_v to_o jesus_n christ_n if_o he_o do_v not_o reconcile_v my_o guilty_a soul_n to_o thou_o and_o do_v not_o teach_v it_o the_o heavenly_a art_n and_o work_v of_o love_n by_o the_o sweet_a communication_n of_o thy_o love_n he_o can_v be_v no_o saviour_n for_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o only_a ultimate_a end_n it_o be_v only_o a_o guide_n and_o way_n to_o thou_o that_o my_o anxious_a soul_n have_v so_o much_o study_v and_o none_o can_v teach_v i_o right_o to_o know_v thou_o and_o to_o love_v thou_o and_o to_o live_v to_o thou_o but_o thyself_o it_o must_v be_v a_o teacher_n send_v from_o thou_o that_o must_v conduct_v i_o to_o thou_o i_o have_v long_o look_v round_o about_o i_o in_o the_o world_n to_o see_v if_o there_o be_v a_o more_o lucid_a region_n from_o whence_o thy_o will_n and_o glory_n may_v be_v better_o see_v than_o that_o in_o which_o my_o lot_n be_v fall_v but_o no_o traveller_n that_o i_o can_v speak_v with_o no_o book_n which_o i_o have_v turn_v over_o no_o creature_n which_o i_o can_v see_v do_v tell_v i_o more_o than_o jesus_n christ_n i_o can_v find_v no_o way_n so_o suitable_a to_o my_o soul_n no_o medicine_n so_o fit_v to_o my_o misery_n no_o bellows_o so_o fit_a to_o kindle_v love_n as_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o glass_n and_o messenger_n of_o thy_o love_n i_o see_v no_o doctrine_n so_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a as_o bear_v the_o image_n and_o superscription_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o so_o full_o confirm_v and_o deliver_v by_o the_o attestation_n of_o thy_o own_o omnipotency_n nor_o any_o which_o so_o pure_o plead_v thy_o cause_n and_o call_v the_o soul_n from_o self_n and_o vanity_n and_o condemn_v its_o sin_n and_o purify_v it_o and_o lead_v it_o direct_o unto_o thou_o and_o though_o my_o former_a ignorance_n disable_v i_o to_o look_v back_o to_o the_o age_n past_a and_o to_o see_v the_o method_n of_o thy_o providence_n and_o when_o i_o look_v into_o thy_o word_n disable_v i_o from_o see_v the_o beauteous_a method_n of_o thy_o truth_n thou_o have_v give_v i_o a_o glimpse_n of_o clear_a light_n which_o have_v discover_v the_o reason_n and_o method_n of_o grace_n which_o i_o then_o discern_v not_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o my_o most_o hideous_a temptation_n and_o perplex_a thought_n thou_o keep_v alive_o the_o root_n of_o faith_n and_o keep_v alive_o the_o love_n to_o thou_o and_o unto_o holiness_n which_o it_o have_v kindle_v thou_o have_v merciful_o give_v i_o the_o witness_n in_o myself_o not_o a_o unreasonable_a persuasion_n in_o my_o mind_n but_o that_o renew_a nature_n those_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a desire_n and_o delight_n which_o sure_o can_v come_v from_o none_o but_o thou_o and_o o_o how_o much_o more_o have_v i_o perceive_v in_o many_o of_o thy_o servant_n than_o in_o myself_o thou_o have_v cast_v my_o lot_n among_o the_o soul_n who_o christ_n have_v heal_v i_o have_v daily_o converse_v with_o those_o who_o he_o have_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a i_o have_v see_v the_o power_n of_o thy_o gospel_n upon_o sinner_n all_o the_o love_n that_o ever_o i_o perceive_v kindle_v towards_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o true_a obedience_n that_o ever_o i_o see_v perform_v to_o thou_o have_v be_v effect_v by_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n how_o oft_o have_v his_o spirit_n help_v i_o to_o pray_v and_o how_o often_o have_v thou_o hear_v those_o prayer_n what_o pledge_n have_v thou_o give_v to_o my_o stagger_a faith_n in_o the_o word_n which_o prayer_n have_v procure_v both_o for_o myself_o and_o many_o other_o and_o if_o confidence_n in_o christ_n be_v yet_o deceit_n must_v i_o not_o say_v that_o thou_o have_v deceive_v
operosa_fw-la &_o multo_fw-la quidem_fw-la faciliora_fw-la certè_fw-la ita_fw-la temere_fw-la de_fw-la mundo_fw-la effutiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la mihi_fw-la quidem_fw-la nunquam_fw-la hunc_fw-la admirabilem_fw-la coeli_fw-la ornatum_fw-la qui_fw-la locus_fw-la est_fw-la proximus_fw-la suspexisse_fw-la videantur_fw-la where_o he_o bring_v in_o this_o passage_n as_o from_o aristotle_n that_o if_o we_o shall_v imagine_v man_n to_o have_v live_v in_o some_o dungeon_n or_o cavern_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o never_o to_o have_v see_v the_o sun_n or_o light_n or_o world_n as_o we_o do_v and_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o doubt_n or_o dispute_v among_o they_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o if_o you_o shall_v present_o bring_v up_o these_o man_n into_o our_o place_n where_o they_o may_v look_v above_o they_o and_o about_o they_o to_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n and_o heaven_n and_o earth_n they_o will_v quick_o by_o such_o a_o sight_n be_v convince_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n but_o as_o he_o true_o add_v assiduitate_fw-la quotidiana_fw-la &_o consuetudine_fw-la oculorum_fw-la assuescunt_fw-la animi_fw-la neque_fw-la admirantur_fw-la neque_fw-la requirunt_fw-la rationes_fw-la earum_fw-la rerum_fw-la quas_fw-la semper_fw-la vident_fw-la perinde_v quasi_fw-la novitas_fw-la nos_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la magnitude_n rerum_fw-la debeat_fw-la adexquirendas_fw-la causas_fw-la excitare_fw-la but_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v i_o that_o the_o first_o mover_n do_v more_o than_o mere_o move_v the_o effect_n of_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n be_v so_o legible_a on_o all_o the_o world_n but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o to_o do_v it_o wise_o and_o to_o attain_v good_a end_n by_o it_o etc._n etc._n be_v but_o the_o modus_fw-la of_o action_n with_o the_o effect_n and_o therefore_o matter_n and_o motion_n right_o order_v may_v be_v nevertheless_o sufficient_a to_o all_o effect_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o creature_n motion_n require_v not_o only_o that_o the_o creator_n move_v they_o but_o that_o he_o place_n and_o order_v they_o and_o move_v they_o right_o and_o that_o he_o remove_v and_o overcome_v impediment_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o there_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o first_o mover_n both_o wisdom_n and_o love_n as_o well_o as_o power_n and_o neither_o his_o power_n wisdom_n or_o love_n be_v locomotion_n in_o himself_o and_o this_o much_o be_v prove_v that_o in_o every_o motion_n there_o be_v divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n which_o be_v more_o than_o matter_n and_o motion_n itself_o i_o proceed_v next_o to_o inquire_v 5._o do_v you_o think_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n existent_a in_o the_o world_n beside_o matter_n and_o motion_n or_o not_o as_o to_o mere_a site_n and_o figure_n and_o other_o such_o order_n or_o mode_n of_o matter_n i_o know_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v they_o to_o have_v now_o a_o be_v as_o well_o as_o motion_n but_o be_v there_o no_o different_a tendency_n to_o motion_n in_o the_o part_n of_o matter_n be_v there_o not_o in_o many_o creature_n a_o power_n a_o inclination_n or_o aptitude_n to_o motion_n beside_o motion_n itself_o be_v there_o not_o a_o reason_n à_fw-fr priore_fw-la to_o be_v give_v why_o one_o creature_n be_v more_o agile_a and_o active_a than_o another_o and_o why_o they_o act_n in_o their_o various_a way_n why_o be_v fire_n more_o active_a than_o earth_n and_o a_o swallow_n than_o a_o snail_n if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o different_a ratio_fw-la motus_fw-la be_v in_o some_o extrinsical_a agent_n only_o which_o move_v they_o you_o will_v hardly_o show_v any_o possibility_n of_o that_o when_o the_o same_o sun_n by_o the_o same_o virtue_n or_o motion_n as_o you_o will_v say_v be_v it_o that_o move_v all_o and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o you_o must_v go_v up_o to_o the_o first_o cause_n to_o ask_v for_o the_o different_a motion_n of_o those_o mover_n when_o our_o enquiry_n now_o be_v de_fw-fr natura_fw-la moventium_fw-la &_o motorum_fw-la creatorum_fw-la if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ratio_fw-la recipiendi_fw-la in_o the_o different_a magnitude_n or_o position_n of_o the_o part_n of_o matter_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o different_a motion_n i_o will_v know_v 1._o whether_o this_o difference_n of_o magnitude_n and_o figure_n and_o site_n be_v now_o antecedent_o necessary_a to_o different_a motion_n be_v not_o so_o heretofore_o as_o well_o as_o now_o if_o you_o say_v no_o you_o feign_v without_o proof_n a_o state_n of_o thing_n and_o order_n of_o cause_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o all_o man_n sense_n perceive_v to_o be_v now_o existent_a and_o who_o be_v the_o wise_a philosopher_n he_o that_o judge_v the_o course_n and_o nature_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v and_o have_v be_v what_o he_o now_o find_v it_o till_o the_o contrary_n be_v prove_v or_o he_o that_o find_v it_o one_o thing_n and_o feign_v it_o sometime_o to_o have_v be_v another_o without_o any_o proof_n that_o which_o be_v now_o antecedent_o necessary_a to_o diversity_n of_o motion_n it_o be_v like_a be_v so_o heretofore_o 2._o and_o then_o how_o can_v one_o simple_a equal_a act_n of_o god_n set_v the_o first_o matter_n into_o motion_n cause_n such_o a_o inequality_n in_o motion_n to_o this_o day_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o hold_v that_o only_o that_o which_o be_v move_v or_o in_o motion_n itself_o can_v move_v and_o that_o motion_n be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o diversity_n 3._o either_o the_o first_o matter_n be_v make_v solid_a in_o large_a parcel_n or_o all_o conjunct_a or_o in_o atom_n if_o it_o be_v make_v first_o in_o atom_n than_o motion_n cause_v not_o division_n if_o it_o be_v make_v conjunct_a and_o solid_a than_o motion_n cause_v not_o conjunction_n and_o solidity_n and_o if_o the_o first_o division_n or_o conjunction_n site_n and_o figure_n of_o matter_n be_v all_o antecedent_n to_o motion_n and_o without_o it_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sole_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n now_o but_o sure_o quantity_n figure_n and_o site_n be_v not_o all_o that_o now_o be_v antecedent_n to_o motion_n do_v not_o a_o man_n feel_v in_o himself_o a_o certain_a power_n to_o sudden_a and_o voluntary_a motion_n he_o that_o sit_v still_o can_v sudden_o rise_v and_o go_v and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o he_o perform_v that_o sudden_a motion_n by_o some_o antecedent_n motion_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o grant_v that_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o by_o that_o alone_a or_o whether_o a_o power_n distinct_a from_o motion_n itself_o be_v not_o as_o evident_o the_o cause_n for_o otherwise_o the_o antecedent_n motion_n will_v proceed_v but_o according_a to_o its_o own_o proportion_n it_o will_v not_o in_o a_o minute_n make_v so_o sudden_a and_o great_a a_o alteration_n i_o can_v restrain_v also_o that_o motion_n which_o some_o antecedent_n motion_n e.g._n passion_n urge_v i_o to_o sure_o this_o power_n of_o do_v or_o not_o do_v be_v somewhat_o different_a from_o do_v itself_o a_o power_n of_o not-moving_a be_v not_o motion_n and_o what_o be_v the_o pondus_fw-la which_o gassendus_fw-la do_v add_v to_o magnitude_n and_o figure_n as_o a_o three_o pre-requisite_a in_o atom_n i_o perceive_v he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o himself_o but_o in_o conclusion_n it_o must_v be_v no_o natural_a gravity_n by_o which_o the_o part_n be_v incline_v to_o the_o whole_a in_o themselves_o but_o the_o mere_a effect_n of_o pulsion_n or_o traction_n or_o both_o at_o the_o first_o he_o be_v for_o both_o conjunct_a pulsion_n of_o the_o air_n and_o traction_n of_o the_o atom_n from_o the_o earth_n but_o of_o this_o he_o repent_v as_o see_v impulsionem_fw-la aeris_fw-la nullam_fw-la esse_fw-la and_o be_v for_o the_o traction_n of_o atom_n alone_o than_o which_o his_o friend_n conceit_n of_o the_o pulsive_a motion_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o its_o diastole_n or_o whatever_o other_o motion_n be_v the_o cause_n do_v seem_v less_o absurd_a but_o that_o man_n that_o will_v have_v i_o believe_v that_o if_o a_o rock_n be_v in_o the_o air_n or_o if_o paul_n steeple_n shall_v fall_v the_o descent_n will_v be_v only_o by_o the_o traction_n of_o the_o hamuli_n of_o invisible_a atom_n or_o by_o the_o pulsion_n of_o air_n and_o sun_n conjunct_a must_v come_v near_a first_o and_o tell_v i_o how_o the_o hamuli_n of_o atom_n can_v fasten_v upon_o a_o marble_n rock_n and_o how_o they_o come_v to_o have_v so_o much_o strength_n as_o to_o move_v that_o rock_n which_o no_o man_n can_v move_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o strength_n or_o power_n beside_o actual_a motion_n and_o why_o it_o be_v that_o those_o draw_v atom_n do_v move_v so_o powerful_o earthwards_o when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o as_o many_o or_o more_o atom_n be_v move_v upward_o by_o the_o sun_n attraction_n and_o more_o be_v move_v circular_o with_o the_o earth_n why_o do_v not_o these_o stop_n or_o
they_o that_o the_o cure_n have_v be_v to_o have_v make_v they_o more_o religious_a and_o not_o less_o and_o that_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o a_o life_n to_o come_v be_v the_o end_n the_o motive_n the_o poise_n of_o all_o wise_a and_o regular_a action_n and_o of_o love_n and_o peace_n of_o right_a government_n and_o obedience_n and_o of_o justice_n mercy_n and_o all_o that_o be_v lovely_a in_o the_o world_n a_o objection_n about_o the_o world_n eternity_n have_v say_v thus_o much_o about_o the_o point_n which_o i_o think_v most_o considerable_a i_o shall_v answer_v a_o objection_n about_o the_o world_n eternity_n because_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o stick_v with_o some_o obj._n we_o find_v it_o the_o hard_a to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n because_o it_o assert_v a_o thing_n which_o aristotle_n have_v evince_v to_o be_v so_o improbable_a as_o be_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n within_o less_o than_o 6000_o year_n when_o no_o natural_a reason_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o eternal_a answ_n 1._o it_o be_v you_o that_o be_v the_o affirmer_n and_o therefore_o on_o who_o the_o natural_a proof_n be_v incumbent_n prove_v if_o you_o can_v that_o the_o world_n be_v eternal_a be_v it_o not_o tedious_a i_o shall_v by_o examine_v your_o reason_n show_v that_o they_o have_v no_o convince_a force_n at_o all_o 31._o 2._o there_o be_v so_o much_o write_v of_o it_o that_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o more_o i_o now_o only_o again_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o raymundus_n lullius_n desire_v he_o not_o to_o reject_v his_o argument_n if_o some_o of_o they_o seem_v not_o cogent_a see_v if_o any_o one_o of_o all_o his_o multitude_n prove_v such_o it_o be_v enough_o 3._o i_o now_o only_o desire_v that_o the_o controversy_n between_o the_o christian_a and_o the_o infidel_n may_v be_v but_o right_o state_v etc._n and_o to_o that_o end_n do_v not_o charge_n christianity_n with_o any_o school-mans_n or_o other_o confident_a person_n private_a opinion_n nor_o suppose_v christ_n or_o scripture_n to_o determine_v any_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v not_o determine_v 1._o christianity_n and_o scripture_n do_v not_o at_o all_o determine_v whether_o the_o whole_a universe_n be_v create_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o this_o our_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v but_o only_o that_o the_o systeme_n or_o world_n which_o we_o belong_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o star_n and_o earth_n be_v then_o create_v nay_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a late_a expositor_n on_o gen._n 1._o do_v expound_v the_o heaven_n which_o god_n be_v say_v to_o create_v as_o be_v only_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o not_o include_v the_o angel_n at_o all_o and_o other_o say_v that_o by_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v mean_v ab_fw-la initio_fw-la rerum_fw-la and_o that_o the_o heaven_n there_o mean_v be_v the_o angelical_a habitation_n and_o the_o earth_n as_o without_o form_n be_v both_o ab_fw-la initio_fw-la rerum_fw-la before_o the_o six_o day_n creation_n which_o begin_v with_o the_o make_n of_o light_n out_o of_o the_o pre-existent_a heaven_n or_o chaos_n i_o think_v not_o this_o opinion_n true_a but_o this_o liberty_n christian_n doctor_n have_v take_v of_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o in_o this_o difficult_a point_n but_o they_o utter_o differ_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n on_o gen._n 1._o and_o on_o job_n 1._o and_o consequent_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o a_o world_n existent_a when_o this_o world_n be_v create_v 2._o or_o if_o any_o that_o see_v more_o than_o i_o can_v prove_v the_o contrary_a yet_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o thing_n undetermined_a by_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o world_n that_o have_v begin_v and_o end_v before_o this_o be_v make_v that_o god_n be_v the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a be_v most_o certain_a but_o whether_o this_o heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o now_o be_v be_v the_o first_o which_o he_o have_v make_v be_v a_o thing_n that_o our_o religion_n do_v not_o at_o all_o meddle_v with_o they_o that_o with_o origen_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v antecedent_n world_n be_v just_o blame_v on_o one_o side_n not_o for_o speak_v thing_n false_a but_o thing_n uncertain_a and_o unrevealed_a and_o for_o corrupt_a christianity_n by_o a_o mixture_n of_o thing_n alien_a and_o doubtful_a and_o those_o who_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o antecedent_n world_n be_v as_o much_o culpable_a on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o not_o more_o on_o the_o same_o account_n and_o upon_o further_a reason_n on_o the_o one_o side_n we_o know_v that_o god_n need_v nothing_o to_o his_o own_o felicity_n but_o be_v perfect_o sufficient_a for_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o creat_v not_o the_o world_n ex_fw-la necessitate_v naturae_fw-la as_o a_o agent_n which_o act_v ad_fw-la ultimum_fw-la posse_fw-la and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o know_v that_o though_o he_o have_v a_o goodness_n of_o self-perfection_n unspeakable_o more_o excellent_a than_o his_o benignity_n as_o relate_v to_o man_n not_o that_o one_o property_n in_o god_n be_v to_o be_v say_v more_o excellent_a than_o another_o in_o itself_o but_o that_o quoad_fw-la relationem_fw-la there_o be_v a_o infinite_a difference_n between_o his_o goodness_n in_o himself_o and_o his_o goodness_n only_o as_o relate_v to_o his_o creature_n and_o measure_v by_o their_o interest_n yet_o we_o confess_v that_o his_o fecundity_n and_o benignity_n be_v include_v in_o his_o own_o goodness_n and_o that_o he_o delight_v to_o do_v good_a and_o be_v communicative_a and_o that_o he_o do_v good_a ex_fw-la necessitate_v voluntaria_fw-la ex_fw-la naturae_fw-la perfectione_n without_o coaction_n it_o be_v most_o necessary_a that_o he_o do_v that_o which_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n say_v be_v best_a which_o make_v th._n white_a de_fw-fr mundo_fw-la say_v that_o god_n do_v necessary_o make_v the_o world_n and_o necessary_o make_v it_o in_o time_n and_o not_o ab_fw-la aeterno_fw-la and_o yet_o all_o this_o most_o voluntary_o because_o he_o do_v necessary_o do_v that_o which_o be_v best_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o if_o a_o man_n will_v presume_v to_o give_v liberty_n to_o his_o reason_n to_o search_v into_o unrevealed_a thing_n that_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o he_o very_o improbable_a that_o he_o who_o be_v actus_fw-la purus_fw-la of_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o who_o now_o take_v pleasure_n in_o all_o his_o work_n and_o his_o delight_n be_v with_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v from_o all_o eternity_n produce_v no_o creature_n till_o less_o than_o 6000_o year_n ago_o when_o a_o thousand_o year_n with_o he_o be_v but_o as_o a_o day_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v resolve_v to_o have_v creature_n to_o all_o eternity_n who_o as_o to_o future_a duration_n shall_v be_v so_o like_a to_o himself_o when_o from_o all_o eternity_n he_o have_v no_o creature_n till_o as_o it_o be_v five_o or_o six_o day_n ago_o christian_n be_v apt_a to_o have_v such_o thought_n as_o these_o as_o well_o as_o you_o when_o they_o look_v but_o to_o rational_a probability_n but_o they_o hold_v that_o all_o these_o matter_n whether_o there_o be_v antecedent_n world_n and_o how_o many_o and_o of_o what_o sort_n and_o of_o what_o duration_n whether_o this_o be_v the_o first_o be_v matter_n unrevealed_a which_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o trouble_v the_o world_n or_o themselves_o with_o pry_v into_o or_o contend_v about_o and_o they_o find_v that_o they_o be_v unfruitful_a speculation_n etc._n which_o do_v but_o overwhelm_v the_o mind_n of_o he_o that_o search_v after_o they_o when_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o we_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n more_o plain_a and_o sure_a and_o solid_a and_o wholesome_a food_n to_o live_v upon_o 3._o and_o if_o it_o be_v unrevealed_a in_o scripture_n whether_o before_o this_o there_o be_v any_o other_o world_n we_o must_v confess_v it_o unrevealed_a whether_o there_o be_v any_o emanant_fw-la or_o create_v entity_n which_o god_n do_v produce_v from_o all_o eternity_n consider_v quoad_fw-la durationem_fw-la only_o for_o the_o scripture_n say_v no_o more_o of_o one_o than_o of_o the_o other_o and_o if_o there_o be_v one_o moment_n divide_v eternity_n only_o imaginarily_o in_o which_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o but_o god_n we_o must_v equal_o confess_v a_o eternity_n in_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o god_n because_o eternity_n have_v no_o beginning_n 4._o but_o christianity_n assure_v we_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o certain_o there_o be_v no_o be_v beside_o god_n but_o what_o be_v create_v produce_v or_o total_o cause_v by_o he_o and_o that_o if_o any_o creature_n be_v eternal_a as_o to_o
to_o be_v their_o captain_n who_o lead_v they_o into_o canaan_n and_o miraculous_o conquer_v all_o the_o inhabitant_n and_o settle_a israel_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o land_n there_o they_o long_o remain_v under_o the_o government_n of_o a_o chieftain_n call_v a_o judge_n successive_o choose_v by_o god_n himself_o sam._n till_o at_o last_o they_o mutinied_a against_o that_o form_n of_o government_n and_o desire_v a_o king_n like_o other_o nation_n whereupon_o god_n give_v they_o a_o bad_a king_n in_o displeasure_n but_o next_o he_o he_o choose_v david_n a_o king_n of_o great_a and_o exemplary_a holiness_n in_o who_o god_n delight_v and_o make_v his_o kingdom_n hereditary_a to_o david_n he_o give_v a_o son_n of_o extraordinary_a wisdom_n who_o by_o god_n appointment_n build_v the_o famous_a temple_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o do_v this_o solomon_n by_o the_o temptation_n of_o his_o wife_n to_o gratify_v they_o set_v up_o idolatry_n also_o in_o the_o land_n chron._n which_o so_o provoke_v god_n that_o he_o resolve_v to_o rend_v ten_o tribe_n of_o the_o twelve_o out_o of_o his_o son_n hand_n which_o according_o be_v do_v and_o they_o revolt_v and_o choose_v a_o king_n of_o their_o own_o and_o only_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o benjamin_n adhere_v to_o the_o posterity_n of_o solomon_n the_o wise_a sentence_n of_o solomon_n and_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n be_v here_o insert_v in_o the_o bible_n the_o reign_v of_o the_o king_n of_o juda_n and_o israel_n be_v afterward_o describe_v the_o wickedness_n and_o idolatry_n of_o most_o of_o their_o successive_a king_n and_o people_n till_o god_n be_v so_o much_o provoke_v by_o they_o give_v they_o up_o into_o captivity_n here_o be_v also_o insert_v many_o book_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o those_o prophet_n which_o god_n send_v from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o call_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o warn_v they_o of_o his_o foretold_v judgement_n and_o last_o nehem._n here_o be_v contain_v some_o of_o the_o history_n of_o their_o state_n in_o captivity_n and_o the_o return_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o cyrus_n where_o in_o a_o tributary_n state_n they_o remain_v in_o expectation_n of_o the_o promise_a messiah_n or_o christ_n thus_o far_o be_v the_o history_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o jew_n be_v too_o sensible_a of_o their_o captivity_n and_o tribute_n and_o too_o desirous_a of_o temporal_a greatness_n and_o dominion_n expect_v that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v restore_v their_o kingdom_n to_o its_o ancient_a splendour_n and_o shall_v subdue_v the_o gentile_a nation_n to_o they_o and_o to_o this_o sense_n they_o expound_v all_o those_o passage_n in_o their_o prophet_n which_o be_v speak_v and_o mean_v of_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o saviour_n of_o soul_n which_o prejudice_v they_o against_o the_o messiah_n when_o he_o come_v so_o that_o though_o they_o look_v and_o long_v for_o his_o come_n yet_o when_o he_o come_v they_o know_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n but_o hate_v he_o and_o persecute_v he_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v foretold_v the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v etc._n in_o which_o god_n will_v send_v the_o promise_a redeemer_n the_o eternal_a wisdom_n and_o word_n of_o god_n the_o second_o in_o the_o trinity_n assume_v a_o humane_a soul_n and_o body_n and_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o virgin_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n without_o man_n concurrence_n his_o birth_n be_v celebrate_v by_o prophecy_n and_o apparition_n and_o applause_n of_o angel_n and_o other_o wonder_n a_o star_n appear_v over_o the_o place_n lead_v some_o astronomer_n out_o of_o the_o east_n to_o worship_v he_o in_o the_o cradle_n which_o herod_n the_o king_n be_v inform_v of_o and_o that_o they_o call_v he_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o cause_v all_o the_o infant_n in_o that_o country_n to_o be_v kill_v that_o he_o may_v not_o escape_v but_o by_o the_o warn_n of_o a_o angel_n jesus_n be_v carry_v into_o egypt_n where_o he_o remain_v till_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n at_o twelve_o year_n old_a he_o dispute_v with_o the_o doctor_n in_o the_o temple_n in_o this_o time_n rise_v a_o prophet_n call_v john_n who_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o call_v the_o people_n to_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v be_v prepare_v for_o he_o and_o baptize_v all_o that_o profess_a repentance_n into_o the_o present_a expectation_n of_o the_o saviour_n about_o the_o thirty_o year_n of_o his_o age_n peltano_n jesus_n resolve_v to_o enter_v upon_o the_o solemn_a performance_n of_o his_o undertake_a work_n and_o first_o he_o go_v to_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v by_o he_o the_o captain_n be_v to_o wear_v the_o same_o colour_n with_o the_o soldier_n when_o john_n have_v baptize_v he_o he_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o when_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o pray_v the_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n descend_v in_o a_o bodily_a shape_n like_o a_o dove_n upon_o he_o and_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n which_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o thou_o i_o be_o well_o please_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o jesus_n do_v after_o his_o baptism_n be_v when_o he_o have_v fast_v forty_o day_n and_o night_n to_o expose_v himself_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o satan_n temptation_n who_o thereupon_o do_v divers_a way_n assault_v he_o 4._o but_o jesus_n perfect_o overcome_v the_o tempter_n who_o have_v overcome_v the_o first_o man_n adam_n thenceforth_o he_o preach_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n and_o call_v man_n to_o repentance_n and_o choose_v twelve_o to_o be_v more_o constant_o with_o he_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o be_v witness_n of_o his_o work_n and_o doctrine_n he_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o go_v up_o and_o down_o with_o they_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o work_a miracle_n to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o reveal_v his_o will_n to_o lose_a mankind_n for_o their_o recovery_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o full_a knowledge_n of_o the_o unseen_a world_n and_o the_o way_n thereto_o and_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n and_o reconciler_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o give_v man_n a_o example_n of_o a_o perfect_a life_n which_o according_o he_o do_v he_o never_o sin_v in_o thought_n word_n or_o deed_n he_o choose_v a_o poor_a inferior_a condition_n of_o life_n to_o teach_v man_n by_o his_o example_n to_o contemn_v the_o wealth_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o immortality_n he_o suffer_v patient_o all_o indignity_n from_o man_n he_o go_v up_o and_o down_o as_o the_o live_a image_n of_o divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n do_v miracle_n to_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o open_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n to_o manifest_v his_o wisdom_n and_o heal_a man_n body_n and_o seek_v the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o manifest_v his_o goodness_n and_o his_o love_n without_o any_o mean_n by_o his_o bare_a command_n he_o immediate_o cure_v fever_n palsy_n and_o all_o disease_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o raise_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n again_o and_o so_o open_a uncontrole_v and_o numerous_a be_v his_o miracle_n as_o that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v that_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n do_v thereby_o bear_v witness_n to_o his_o word_n yet_o do_v not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o jew_n believe_v in_o he_o for_o all_o these_o miracle_n because_o he_o come_v not_o in_o worldly_a pomp_n to_o restore_v their_o kingdom_n and_o subdue_v the_o world_n but_o they_o blaspheme_v his_o very_a miracle_n and_o say_v he_o do_v they_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o fear_v lest_o his_o fame_n shall_v bring_v envy_n and_o danger_n upon_o they_o from_o the_o roman_n who_o rule_v over_o they_o they_o be_v his_o most_o malicious_a persecutor_n themselves_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o preach_v be_v not_o the_o unnecessary_a curiosity_n of_o philosophy_n nor_o the_o subservient_fw-fr art_n and_o science_n which_o natural_a light_n reveal_v and_o which_o natural_a man_n can_v sufficient_o teach_v but_o it_o be_v to_o teach_v man_n to_o know_v god_n and_o to_o know_v themselves_o their_o sin_n and_o danger_n and_o how_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o pardon_v and_o sanctify_a and_o save_v how_o to_o live_v in_o holiness_n to_o god_n and_o in_o love_n and_o righteousness_n to_o man_n and_o in_o special_a amity_n and_o unity_n
we_o do_v nothing_o against_o our_o neighbour_n life_n or_o bodily_a welfare_n but_o careful_o preserve_v it_o as_o our_o own_o 7._o that_o no_o man_n defile_v his_o neighbour_n wife_n 30._o nor_o commit_v fornication_n but_o preserve_v our_o own_o and_o other_o chastity_n in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n 8._o that_o we_o wrong_v not_o another_o in_o his_o estate_n by_o steal_v 4.28_o fraud_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n but_o preserve_v our_o neighbour_n estate_n as_o our_o own_o 9_o that_o we_o pervert_v not_o justice_n by_o false_a witness_n or_o otherwise_o 13.5_o nor_o wrong_v our_o neighbour_n in_o his_o name_n by_o slander_n backbiting_a or_o reproach_n that_o we_o lie_v not_o but_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n and_o preserve_v our_o neighbour_n right_a and_o honour_n as_o our_o own_o 10._o that_o we_o be_v not selfish_o selfish_a set_v up_o our_o self_n and_o our_o own_o against_o our_o neighbour_n and_o his_o good_a 2.14_o desire_v to_o draw_v from_o he_o unto_o ourselves_o but_o that_o we_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o desire_v his_o welfare_n as_o our_o own_o do_v to_o other_o as_o regular_o we_o will_v have_v they_o do_v to_o we_o forbear_v and_o forgive_a one_o another_o love_v even_o our_o enemy_n and_o do_v good_a to_o all_o according_a to_o our_o power_n both_o for_o their_o body_n and_o their_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n §_o 15._o ii_o the_o sum_n or_o abstract_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v contain_v in_o three_o short_a form_n the_o first_o call_v the_o creed_n contain_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o christian_a belief_n the_o second_o call_v the_o lord_n prayer_n contain_v the_o matter_n of_o christian_a desire_n and_o hope_n the_o three_o call_v the_o law_n or_o decalogue_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o moral_a duty_n which_o be_v as_o follow_v the_o belief_n 1._o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 2._o and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v descend_v to_o 222._o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 3._o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o life_n everlasting_a the_o lord_n prayer_n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n and_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o we_o and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n the_o ten_o commandment_n 5._o god_n speak_v all_o these_o word_n say_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o bring_v thou_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o bondage_n 1._o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n before_o i_o 2._o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v unto_o thou_o any_o grave_a image_n or_o any_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o heaven_n above_o or_o that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o or_o that_o be_v in_o the_o water_n under_o the_o earth_n thou_o shall_v not_o vow_v down_o thyself_o to_o they_o nor_o serve_v they_o for_o i_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_o a_o jealous_a god_n visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n of_o they_o that_o hate_v i_o and_o show_v mercy_n unto_o thousand_o of_o they_o that_o love_v i_o and_o keep_v my_o commandment_n 3._o thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o vain_a for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o hold_v he_o guiltless_a that_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a 4._o 1_o remember_v the_o sabbath_n day_n to_o keep_v it_o holy_a six_o day_n shall_v thou_o labour_v and_o do_v all_o thy_o work_n but_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o it_o thou_o shall_v not_o do_v any_o work_n thou_o nor_o thy_o son_n nor_o thy_o daughter_n thy_o manservant_n nor_o thy_o maidservant_n nor_o thy_o cattle_n nor_o the_o strange_a that_o be_v within_o thy_o gate_n for_o in_o six_o day_n the_o lord_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o all_o that_o in_o they_o be_v and_o rest_v the_o seven_o day_n wherefore_o the_o lord_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o hallow_v it_o 5._o honour_n thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n that_o thy_o day_n may_v be_v long_o upon_o the_o land_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n give_v thou_o 6._o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v 7._o thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n 8._o thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v 9_o thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o thy_o neighbour_n 10._o thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n house_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n nor_o his_o manservant_n nor_o his_o maidservant_n nor_o his_o ox_n nor_o his_o ass_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v thy_o neighbour_n §_o 16._o the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v sum_v up_o by_o christ_n into_o these_o two_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o might_n and_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o §_o 17._o these_o commandment_n be_v first_o deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n be_v continue_v by_o christ_n as_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n only_o instead_o of_o deliverance_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o egypt_n he_o have_v make_v our_o redemption_n from_o sin_n and_o satan_n which_o be_v thereby_o typify_v to_o be_v the_o fundamental_a motive_n and_o he_o have_v remove_v the_o memorial_n of_o the_o creation-r_a from_o the_o seven_o day-sabbath_n to_o be_v keep_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n which_o be_v the_o first_o with_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o our_o redemption_n in_o the_o solemn_a worship_n of_o his_o holy_a assembly_n §_o 18._o iii_o the_o brief_a summary_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n etc._n contain_v the_o essential_o only_o be_v in_o the_o sacramental_a covenant_n of_o grace_n wherein_o the_o penitent_a believer_n renounce_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n do_v solemn_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n as_o his_o only_a god_n his_o father_n his_o saviour_n and_o his_o sanctifier_n engage_v himself_o hereby_o to_o a_o holy_a life_n of_o resignation_n obedience_n and_o love_n and_o receive_v the_o pardon_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o title_n to_o the_o further_a help_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o everlasting_a life_n this_o covenant_n be_v first_o enter_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o after_o renew_v in_o our_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v but_o faith_n in_o god_n our_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n produce_v the_o hope_n of_o life_n everlasting_a and_o possess_v we_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o all_o this_o express_v in_o the_o genuine_a fruit_n of_o patience_n obedience_n and_o praise_v to_o god_n and_o work_n of_o charity_n and_o justice_n unto_o man._n §_o 19_o that_o all_o this_o religion_n may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v receive_v and_o practise_v by_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v down_o into_o flesh_n 2.21_o and_o give_v we_o a_o perfect_a example_n of_o it_o in_o his_o most_o perfect_a life_n in_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o innocency_n conquer_a all_o temptation_n contemn_v the_o honour_n riches_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n in_o perfect_a patience_n and_o meekness_n and_o condescension_n and_o in_o the_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n and_o man._n when_o perfect_a doctrine_n be_v second_v by_o perfect_a exemplariness_n of_o life_n there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a light_n set_v before_o we_o to_o lead_v we_o out_o of_o our_o state_n of_o darkness_n into_o the_o everlasting_a light_n and_o have_v it_o not_o be_v a_o pattern_n of_o holy_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o self-denial_n obedience_n and_o love_n of_o patience_n and_o of_o truth_n and_o prudence_n and_o of_o contempt_n of_o all_o inferior_a thing_n even_o of_o life_n itself_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o for_o life_n eternal_a it_o